Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n church_n word_n write_a 3,648 5 10.7659 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A09147 The Protestants theologie containing the true solutions, and groundes of religion, this daye mainteyned, and intreated, betwixt the Protestants, and Catholicks. Writen, by the R. F. F. VVilliame Patersoune religious priest, Conuentuall of Antwerpe, preacher of Gods word, and Vicar generall of the holy order of S. Augustin, through the kingdome of Scotland. The 1. Part. Paterson, F. William. 1620 (1620) STC 19461; ESTC S101863 199,694 338

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

be_v they_o in_o like_a authority_n with_o the_o jew_n whih_o after_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v authorise_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o authentical_a scripture_n upon_o which_o authority_n s._n austen_n fear_v not_o to_o confirm_v the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n with_o the_o church_n objection_n long_a since_o of_o many_o it_o be_v doubt_v of_o the_o epystle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o second_o of_o s_o peter_n the_o last_o of_o daniel_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o for_o this_o doubt_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v adjudge_v heretic_n who_o now_o either_o reject_v they_o or_o put_v they_o in_o doubt_n answer_n the_o consequent_a be_v deny_v because_o the_o like_a raeson_n shall_v follow_v in_o the_o like_o doubt_n whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v again_o who_o heretic_n have_v baptize_v which_o s._n cyprian_n with_o some_o other_o have_v thought_n meet_v to_o be_v do_v and_o whether_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v of_o christian_n yea_o also_o who_o believe_v of_o the_o gen_n till_v whereupon_o the_o counsel_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v move_v about_o these_o heresy_n lykwyse_o whether_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o euage_o do_v appertayn_v to_o the_o gentile_n or_o to_o the_o jew_n only_o as_o be_v dispute_v in_o the_o act._n apost_n cap._n 11_o for_o albeit_o the_o church_n retain_v all_o time_n the_o same_o one_o faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o progress_n of_o time_n and_o occasion_n as_o the_o church_n increase_v in_o her_o number_n so_o thing_n pertinent_a to_o faith_n may_v be_v amplify_v and_o make_v more_o ample_a than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n for_o the_o church_n at_o no_o time_n ever_o receive_v for_o a_o opinion_n of_o faith_n that_o which_o before_o she_o have_v once_o reject_v now_o those_o book_n once_o censure_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a more_o to_o doubt_v of_o they_o and_o be_v in_o as_o great_a authority_n and_o veneration_n as_o the_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v for_o example_n for_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o gold_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v suspect_v to_o be_v false_a and_o conterfeyt_v yet_o if_o afterward_o it_o be_v try_v by_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o goldsmyth_n and_o find_v sufficient_a and_o approve_v of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o whole_a people_n &_o go_v currant_n as_o other_o quoin_v and_o be_v no_o less_o worth_n than_o any_o other_o peace_n of_o gold_n which_o be_v never_o suspect_v even_o so_o these_o book_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n qvaestio_n xvii_o of_o tradition_n wherefore_o be_v the_o papist_n so_o simple_a as_o to_o believe_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o call_v tradition_n calu._n lib_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 8._o §_o 8._o brent_n in_o prolog_n kemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n conc._n trident._n answer_n it_o may_v be_v demand_v in_o like_a manner_n wherefore_o caluin_n lib_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 3._o §_o 19_o allow_v and_o commend_v tradition_n for_o in_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n he_o command_v as_o a_o precept_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v there_o be_v no_o commandment_n extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n he_o himself_o protest_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a as_o his_o own_o word_n record_n albeit_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n extant_a for_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o we_o do_v see_v it_o to_o be_v in_o perpètuall_a use_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o that_o same_o diligent_a observation_n of_o they_o aught_o to_o be_v to_o we_o as_o a_o commandment_n so_o that_o caluin_n who_o before_o deny_v tradition_n do_v allow_v of_o they_o as_o necessary_a in_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o ministry_n who_o for_o entrance_n we_o see_v lead_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o contradiction_n for_o i_o say_v that_o not_o only_o these_o thing_n which_o plain_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v but_o also_o many_o tradition_n and_o observation_n which_o have_v flow_v and_o come_v from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n which_o be_v to_o be_v retain_v necessary_a as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o write_a word_n itself_o because_o it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o have_v delyver_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v for_o in_o the_o 16_o of_o s._n john_n christ_n say_v i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o you_o but_o you_o can_v bear_v they_o now_o in_o which_o word_n he_o signifi_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o needful_a to_o be_v know_v to_o the_o apostle_n which_o thing_n out_o of_o doubt_n he_o make_v know_v when_o he_o appear_v to_o they_o the_o forty_o day_n speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n his_o church_n and_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o what_o the_o apostle_n have_v hear_v out_o of_o doubt_n they_o have_v delyver_v to_o the_o church_n for_o her_o cause_n these_o be_v communicate_v of_o our_o lord_n to_o they_o which_o although_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o by_o tradition_n be_v delyver_v of_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o thess_n epist_n 2._o cap._n 2_o v._n 14._o stand_v and_o hold_v fast_o say_v he_o the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v receive_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n delyver_v to_o you_o whether_o by_o the_o preach_a viva_fw-la voce_fw-la or_o by_o a_o epistle_n write_v to_o you_o which_o place_n these_o venerable_a father_n expounde_n of_o tradition_n as_o s._n basil_n lib._n de_fw-fr s._n s._n chry._n oecom_v theoph._n and_o s._n aug._n epist_n 174._o to_o that_o now_o say_v he_o which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v it_o fall_v so_o that_o homoousion_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o write_a word_n and_o yet_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v defend_v likewise_o the_o father_n be_v call_v unbegotten_a which_o be_v not_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o symbol_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v by_o tradition_n &_o not_o by_o the_o write_a word_n likewise_o the_o observance_n of_o sondy_n for_o the_o sabbath_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n ●he_v receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n fast_v and_o s_n luke_n acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n what_o he_o have_v write_v in_o his_o euange_o for_o if_o you_o reject_v tradition_n why_o not_o also_o the_o whole_a write_v scripture_n by_o what_o reason_n be_v there_o only_o four_o evangelist_n and_o no_o more_o and_o wherefore_o be_v they_o receive_v that_o never_o see_v christ_n and_o these_o evangelist_n reject_v who_o do_v see_v hear_v and_o be_v conversant_a with_o he_o as_o nicodem_n s._n thomas_n thaddeus_n s._n peter_n bartholomewe_n and_o other_o who_o have_v wrytren_a euangelye_v and_o yet_o their_o write_a euangelye_n be_v reject_v and_o these_o other_o four_o be_v receive_v who_o never_o do_v see_v christ_n and_o with_o we_o you_o believe_v they_o which_o be_v not_o express_v by_o any_o write_a word_n but_o only_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a evangelist_n by_o tradition_n what_o can_v be_v more_o say_v for_o verification_n of_o the_o truth_n than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o thes_n cap._n 2._o v._n 14._o which_o word_n all_o tend_v for_o the_o commendation_n of_o our_o belief_n of_o which_o s_n basil_n l._n de_fw-fr s._n s._n cap._n 29._o i_o account_v it_o apostolical_a to_o continue_v and_o believe_v firm_o the_o unwriten_a word_n to_o who_o all_o the_o father_n be_v conformable_a for_o when_o the_o old_a heretic_n as_o gnostes_n martion_n cerdone_n arius_n eunomius_n aerius_n nestorius_n etc._n etc._n oppose_v themselves_o against_o tradition_n disdain_v and_o deny_v they_o be_v with_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n condemn_v as_o heretic_n as_o witness_v iraen_n lib._n 3._o tert._n the_o prescript_n s._n basil_n lib._n de_fw-fr s._n s._n cap._n 27._o epiph._n haer._n 53._o s._n aug._n lib._n 5._o cont_n maxim_n now_o brother_n asill_n what_o can_v be_v deny_v against_o tradition_n what_o argument_n have_v you_o for_o your_o defence_n for_o you_o accept_v no_o scripture_n as_o canonical_a ergo_fw-la you_o must_v prove_v scripture_n by_o tradition_n and_o the_o other_o scripture_n which_o you_o reject_v be_v name_v apochrypha_n and_o in_o so_o do_v you_o must_v allow_v tradition_n and_o so_o on_o every_o side_n tradition_n convince_v you_o and_o yet_o you_o will_v be_v oppugner_n and_o denier_n of_o tradition_n i_o demand_v this_o if_o you_o be_v to_o convince_v any_o man_n of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n what_o argument_n will_v you_o use_v to_o convince_v he_o as_o for_o example_n luther_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n decree_v to_o reject_v the_o epistle_n
of_o s._n james_n for_o apochripha_n to_o convince_v he_o of_o this_o error_n it_o can_v be_v do_v by_o the_o scripture_n neither_o of_o himself_o because_o he_o be_v judge_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n neither_o be_v he_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o private_a spirit_n for_o all_o do_v make_v for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o opinion_n therefore_o to_o convince_v he_o right_o they_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o say_v s._n aug._n serm._n 191._o the_o temp_n we_o receive_v the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o number_n of_o book_n the_o which_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v delyver_v to_o us._n moreover_o this_o other_o argument_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n till_o moses_n two_o thousand_o year_n be_v without_o scripture_n only_o rule_v by_o tradition_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a testamennt_v christ_n have_v write_v nothing_o neither_o command_v to_o write_v but_o well_o he_o say_v marc._n 16._o vers_fw-la 15._o preach_v you_o the_o euange_o to_o all_o creature_n in_o which_o mission_n no_o precept_n be_v give_v of_o writing_n for_o salvation_n depend_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o upon_o book_n neither_o the_o write_a scripture_n nor_o revelation_n or_o pprophecy_n etc._n etc._n for_o that_o cause_n iraen_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o write_v that_o some_o nation_n in_o his_o time_n have_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o no_o scripture_n where_o be_v it_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o reject_v tradition_n but_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o you_o withstand_v all_o tradition_n for_o these_o be_v banish_v easy_o you_o may_v pervert_v and_o gloss_n the_o scripture_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o your_o own_o mind_n which_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n stand_v out_o against_o you_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o verity_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o your_o fancy_n which_o corrupt_a interpretation_n permit_v and_o suffer_v we_o shall_v see_v you_o follow_v tradition_n and_o consequent_o your_o own_o invention_n to_o be_v for_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o first_o part_n be_v probable_a for_o caluin_n himself_o approve_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n comment_v in_o the_o 104_o psal_n sec_fw-la 18._o many_o thing_n remain_v among_o they_o by_o successive_a tradition_n which_o be_v godly_a and_o necessary_a for_o they_o of_o the_o which_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o which_o place_n it_o follow_v that_o caluin_n willing_o will_v judaize_v and_o as_o concern_v the_o follow_v of_o their_o own_o sense_n in_o reject_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o erect_v their_o own_o tradition_n contrary_a to_o the_o write_a word_n i_o will_v most_o willing_o be_v satiefy_v by_o what_o reason_n either_o spiritual_a or_o moral_a why_o you_o puritan_n uphold_v and_o set_v up_o tradition_n as_o the_o pillar_n of_o repentance_n denigrate_v and_o make_v black_a and_o sinner_n to_o stand_v there_o to_o the_o spectacle_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n with_o the_o show_n of_o their_o head_n at_o the_o cross_n bind_v with_o iron_n chain_n in_o time_n of_o market_n your_o sackcloth_n at_o the_o church_n door_n and_o cart_v of_o poor_a woman_n through_o the_o city_n of_o who_o have_v you_o learned_a to_o punish_v fornicator_n by_o this_o ignominious_a punishment_n other_o by_o the_o purse_n and_o to_o pardon_v some_o who_o be_v fat_a and_o to_o execute_v rigour_n upon_o the_o poor_a from_o whence_o have_v you_o receive_v that_o tradition_n in_o your_o prayer_n to_o hold_v your_o nose_n in_o other_o tail_n and_o to_o lie_v groan_v on_o the_o ground_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o whence_o be_v that_o tradition_n to_o fast_o on_o sunday_n and_o feast_v on_o friday_n and_o to_o work_v on_o christmas_n day_n and_o other_o saint_n day_n and_o to_o observe_v monday_n suitor_n sunday_n for_o holy_a day_n these_o &_o a_o thousand_o more_o be_v the_o puritan_n tradition_n of_o their_o own_o invention_n without_o any_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n and_o yet_o not_o withstand_v they_o will_v abolishe_v and_o condemn_v all_o tradition_n and_o yet_o will_v set_v up_o and_o authorize_v tradition_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o all_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o any_o age_n before_o pass_v objection_n the_o lord_n say_v deut._n 12._o vers_fw-la 32._o what_o i_o command_v thou_o do_v thou_o that_o unto_o the_o lord_n only_o neither_o shall_v thou_o add_v any_o thing_n neither_o diminish_v therefore_o tradition_n be_v superfluous_a and_o in_o vain_a answer_n if_o this_o argument_n be_v available_a neither_o the_o prophet_n nor_o the_o apostle_n ought_v to_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n after_o moses_n for_o what_o the_o prophet_n have_v write_v be_v not_o contain_v in_o moses_n neither_o what_o the_o evangelist_n &_o apostle_n have_v write_v be_v contayeed_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o general_o and_o implicit_a in_o like_o sort_n tradition_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n implicit_a when_o christ_n say_v luc._n 10_o v._n 16._o who_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o therefore_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n which_o say_v that_o thou_o shall_v add_v nothing_o nor_o diminish_v be_v that_o thou_o shall_v add_v nothing_o repugnant_a unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o same_o sense_n say_v s._n paul_n gal._n 1._o v._n 8._o whether_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n evangelise_v to_o you_o otherwise_o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v evangelize_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v for_o that_o preposition_n praeter_fw-la be_v asmuch_o to_o say_v as_o contrary_n for_o otherways_o shall_v he_o be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o who_o add_v many_o thing_n as_o his_o epistle_n witness_v and_o likewise_o s._n john_n after_o he_o have_v write_v the_o apocalyps_n and_o euange_o who_o threaten_v the_o same_o curse_n shall_v fall_v in_o the_o same_o sentencen_v in_o add_v to_o his_o epistle_n in_o which_o be_v many_o precept_n &_o tradition_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n and_o euange_o etc._n etc._n objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n to_o believe_v therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o contain_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v answer_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n to_o believe_v but_o not_o adequat_fw-la and_o a_o right_a rule_n because_o the_o right_a rule_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v or_o delyver_v by_o tradition_n objection_n these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n but_o all_o thing_n write_v serve_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n therefore_o all_o belief_n be_v write_v answer_n saint_n paul_n say_v that_o abel_n enoch_n no_o abraham_n isac_n jacob_n heb._n 11._o have_v undoubted_o true_a faith_n yet_o they_o have_v no_o scripture_n write_v again_o the_o primitive_a church_n at_o least_o ten_o year_n after_o christ_n have_v no_o scripture_n write_v who_o will_v say_v but_o that_o they_o have_v true_a faith_n again_o these_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o write_a word_n to_o wit_n the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o virginity_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n the_o baptise_v of_o child_n and_o the_o not_o rebaptise_v of_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v of_o heretic_n the_o break_n of_o the_o sabaoth_n &_o keep_v of_o sunday_n the_o observe_n of_o easter_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fast_v the_o eat_n of_o blood_n &_o strangle_a mere_n prohibete_v in_o the_o law_n and_o euamge_o act._n 15_o but_o i_o will_v know_v of_o the_o protestant_n what_o scripture_n they_o have_v for_o woman_n to_o singe_v psalm_n and_o to_o gloss_n on_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o church_n at_o home_n and_o in_o the_o tavern_n what_o scripture_n have_v you_o for_o your_o pillary_n cross_n steeple_n repentance_n seat_n cart_v and_o show_v of_o poor_a woman_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o fornication_n for_o these_o thing_n you_o have_v no_o scripture_n but_o must_v build_v upon_o tradition_n either_o true_a or_o false_a qvaestio_n xviii_o of_o the_o certitude_n of_o hope_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n deny_v that_o our_o hope_n be_v with_o certitude_n see_v it_o be_v write_v that_o hope_n make_v we_o not_o ashamed_a but_o bring_v with_o it_o certitude_n and_o confidence_n luth_n art_n 10_o 11._o caluin_n lib._n 3._o instit_fw-la cap_n 2._o §_o 16._o answer_n what_o certitude_n &_o assure_a hope_n can_v the_o protestant_n have_v in_o our_o saviour_n if_o they_o defend_v and_o abide_v in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o their_o
one_o new_a doctrine_n and_o of_o these_o some_o be_v call_v marcionist_n basilidanes_n other_o saturnist_n other_o again_o of_o late_a lutheran_n catholik_n their_o name_n and_o profession_n be_v after_o the_o name_n of_o man_n and_o so_o fail_v to_o be_v call_v catholik_n caluinist_n protestant_n puritan_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o they_o fail_v to_o be_v call_v christianes_n as_o say_v athan._n in_o apol_n secund_a &_o lact._n firm_a lib._n 4._o c._n 30._o de_fw-la vera_fw-la sapientia_fw-la therefore_o heretic_n and_o there_o reform_a faith_n be_v not_o learn_v of_o the_o apostle_n father_n and_o predecessor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o partly_o borrow_v of_o some_o other_o heresy_n or_o partly_o by_o fantastical_a and_o new_a invention_n and_o so_o no_o faith_n but_o invention_n neither_o apostolical_a but_o pharisaical_a man_n the_o reform_a faith_n ●is_fw-la lyk_fw-mi a_o paint_v man_n nether_a catholic_a but_o particular_a which_o be_v no_o more_o faith_n in_o effect_n than_o a_o paint_a man_n be_v a_o man_n for_o this_o cause_n s._n hieron_n epist._n ad_fw-la pamach_n reproach_n &_o tax_v the_o heretic_n say_v wheir_o for_o after_o fourhundrith_v year_n past_a labour_n you_o to_o teach_v which_o before_o we_o have_v not_o know_v for_o unto_o this_o present_a day_n know_v the_o world_n wes_z catholik_n christian_n before_o their_o faith_n be_v know_v without_o your_o doctrine_n the_o world_n be_v christian_a and_o tertull._n de_fw-fr praes_fw-la heretic_n repelle_n their_o vain_a boast_n concern_v any_o catholic_a title_n say_v who_o be_v you_o from_o whence_o and_o when_o come_v you_o where_o have_v you_o lurk_v so_o long_o and_o s._n august_n no_o less_o scorn_v they_o say_v to_o the_o donat._n come_v s._n aug._n admiration_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v come_v from_o whence_o have_v you_o appear_v of_o what_o soil_n have_v you_o sprunge_v out_o over_o what_o sea_n have_v you_o come_v or_o what_o heaven_n have_v you_o fall_v from_o and_o likewise_o opt._n melet._n lib._n 2._o contr_n parm._n say_v in_o derision_n to_o the_o heretic_n church_n opt._n mel._n deride_v they_o ask_v the_o original_n of_o their_o church_n show_v the_o original_n of_o your_o church_n who_o will_v challenge_v to_o you_o the_o holy_a catholick-church_n and_o as_o valer._n max._n lib._n 6._o in_o principio_fw-la say_v for_o conclusion_n that_o as_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a pledge_n of_o humane_a salvation_n belevere_n as_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v a_o safeguard_n to_o salvation_n so_o be_v the_o catholic_a name_n a_o safeguard_n to_o all_o belevere_n and_o a_o safeguard_n for_o man_n so_o be_v this_o name_n catholic_a a_o safeguard_n to_o all_o christian_a believer_n and_o theirfor_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o adheere_v and_o join_v ourself_o to_o the_o catholik-church_n and_o not_o to_o your_o reform_a which_o have_v no_o affinity_n nor_o any_o thing_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n or_o name_n in_o it_o morover_n these_o and_o diverse_a reason_n persuade_v i_o catholic_a reason_n persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v the_o roman-church_n to_o be_v catholic_a the_o only_a roman_a catholik_n faith_n to_o be_v accept_v as_o true_a apostolical_a doctrine_n but_o you_o and_o other_o suchlyk_fw-mi under_o pretext_n colour_n of_o reformation_n to_o be_v repudiat_fw-la as_o very_o fleet_a dregs_n of_o heresy_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v difficile_a to_o prove_v for_o the_o apostle_n say_v ephes_n 4._o that_o there_o be_v one_o come_fw-mi and_o save_v faith_n in_o express_v these_o word_n there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n munch_v this_o church_n be_v praise_v of_o the_o apostle_n own_o munch_v and_o first_o for_o that_o be_v the_o true_a and_o apostolical_a faith_n which_o the_o apostel_n praise_v god_n and_o write_v the_o roman_n cap._n 1._o do_v say_v your_o faith_n be_v publish_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v hate_v and_o dispraise_v by_o name_n of_o papistry_n and_o proprie_fw-la be_v that_o same_o roman_a faith_n calumniate_v this_o catholic_a church_n be_v hate_v of_o all_o heretic_n and_o calumniate_v see_v no_o man_n as_o yet_o by_o any_o sure_a reason_n can_v show_v the_o roman_a church_n from_o that_o time_n to_o discrepat_fw-la or_o disagree_v in_o any_o substantial_a point_n or_o that_o either_o bishope_n counsel_n or_o any_o catholic_n person_n do_v dissent_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o essentialle_n or_o yet_o the_o pastor_n of_o our_o church_n essentialle_n among_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v no_o variance_n in_o essentialle_n at_o any_o time_n to_o vary_v from_o they_o in_o substantial_a thing_n yea_o in_o the_o smal-l_a article_n what_o soever_o but_o all_o to_o accord_v and_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o to_o favour_n no_o opinion_n of_o heresy_n therefore_o our_o papistical_a and_o roman_a faith_n have_v obtain_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o apostolical_a name_n that_o richtly_a other_o sect_n discover_v this_o be_v only_o to_o be_v adjudge_v and_o believe_v of_o all_o man_n for_o true_a catholic_n and_o apostolical_a and_o you_o for_o heresy_n revelation_n true_a faith_n most_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v of_o hear_v and_o not_o by_o read_v of_o book_n or_o revelation_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o who_o ordinary_o declare_v or_o teach_v to_o any_o other_o it_o must_v be_v first_o by_o the_o ear_n receive_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o apostell_n affirm_v rom._n 10._o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v be_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o will_v say_v true_a faith_n be_v conceive_v not_o immediate_o by_o revelation_n or_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v hard_o of_o the_o preacher_n and_o mediate_o by_o external_a doctrine_n and_o the_o doctrine_n true_o that_o be_v hard_a or_o to_o be_v hard_a consist_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v by_o the_o church_n but_o the_o reform_a faith_n teach_v by_o luther_n and_o caluin_n and_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o by_o hear_v and_o external_a doctrine_n which_o they_o ever_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n from_o any_o pastor_n doctor_n bishope_o or_o any_o other_o have_v authority_n of_o mission_n church_n the_o protestant_n preiching_a be_v nether_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nether_a of_o the_o church_n or_o ever_o have_v commission_n of_o any_o man_n to_o preach_v that_o reform_a faith_n therefore_o their_o reform_a faith_n be_v no_o true_a faith_n the_o minor_a be_v evident_a because_o they_o can_v not_o produce_v any_o doctor_n nor_o pastor_n if_o they_o can_v do_v it_o from_o who_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o doctrine_n for_o the_o assertiones_fw-la write_v by_o luther_n himself_o declare_v the_o contrary_n who_o in_o his_o book_n of_o servile_a liberty_n church_n luther_n glory_n he_o to_o dissent_v from_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n object_n against_o erasmus_n rotterd_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o frewill_n public_o to_o vaunt_v &_o boast_v he_o to_o depart_v and_o dissent_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o former_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o declare_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o oppose_v himself_o contraire_fw-fr to_o dion_n areop_n iren._n clem._n cypr._n arnob._n august_n etc._n etc._n who_o be_v doctrine_n in_o the_o course_n of_o frewill_n deliver_v of_o the_o elder_n to_o be_v true_a catholic_a doctrine_n and_o authorise_v of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n we_o say_v luther_n believe_v scripture_n luther_n adjudge_v all_o the_o father_n blind_a &_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o preach_v that_o the_o father_n all_o these_o many_o age_n past_a plain_o have_v be_v blind_a and_o most_o unexpert_a ignorant_a and_o unlern_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o for_o conclusion_n of_o this_o minor_a their_o preach_n and_o doctrine_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o of_o any_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o no_o faith_n nether_a word_n of_o god_n jerusaien_n true_a faith_n shall_v begin_v at_o jerusaien_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n aught_o to_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o after_o to_o go_v abroad_o through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o s._n luc._n 24._o it_o behove_v that_o penance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n to_o all_o nation_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o the_o preach_n of_o luther_n and_o caluin_v reform_v faith_n have_v not_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n corn_n the_o reform_a faith_n begin_v in_o germany_n &_o in_o geneve_v &_o in_o particular_a corn_n nether_a be_v it_o spread_v abroad_o through_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n the_o minor_a be_v evident_a for_o luther_n begin_v in_o wittenberg_n in_o saxony_n and_o caluin_n in_o
if_o we_o read_v our_o service_n &_o prayer_n in_o latin_a the_o vulgar_a people_n understand_v it_o not_o and_o so_o there_o be_v no_o more_o fruit_n of_o the_o hear_n of_o it_o then_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v speak_v to_o the_o wall_n answer_n the_o apostle_n say_v contain_v a_o threefold_a prayer_n to_o wit_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o mind_n to_o which_o these_o three_o concur_v the_o tongue_n the_o will_n and_o understanding_n therefore_o if_o any_o pray_v with_o his_o mouth_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n he_o pray_v with_o mouth_n and_o will_n if_o he_o do_v it_o for_o god_n cause_n but_o his_o mind_n be_v without_o fruit_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o understande_v not_o because_o what_o he_o pray_v he_o understande_v not_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n his_o prayer_n be_v not_o without_o fruit_n for_o it_o be_v meritorious_a to_o he_o that_o pray_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n albeit_o it_o be_v destitute_a of_o that_o fruit_n which_o man_n conceive_v by_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n strive_v to_o declare_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n &_o of_o the_o word_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o tongue_n for_o see_v daily_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a increase_v both_o among_o ethnic_n &_o jew_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o requisite_a to_o the_o faithful_a to_o speak_v before_o they_o with_o many_o tongue_n but_o than_o it_o be_v their_o part_n to_o speak_v with_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o which_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n but_o now_o when_o man_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o with_o continual_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n what_o service_n or_o prayer_n be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o therefore_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v divyne_v service_n be_v do_v in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n see_v it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o the_o vulgar_a what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o mass_n or_o song_n of_o the_o church_n whilst_o they_o comforme_v their_o gesture_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o priest_n now_o to_o stand_v now_o to_o bow_v their_o kne_v now_o to_o leave_v up_o their_o hand_n and_o eye_n now_o to_o knok_fw-mi on_o their_o briest_n &_o c_o but_o to_o the_o argument_n which_o the_o heretic_n propound_v against_o the_o mass_n and_o church_n matin_n we_o answer_v that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o a_o prophet_n preacher_n or_o doctor_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n as_o hierome_n &_o austen_n witness_n in_o this_o place_n second_o that_o albeit_o the_o lay-man_n understand_v not_o the_o word_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o understand_v all_o the_o mystery_n by_o preach_v therefore_o the_o hear_n of_o mass_n and_o matine_n and_o even_o song_n be_v not_o unprofitable_a etc._n etc._n howbeit_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o word_n for_o these_o reason_n because_o in_o the_o divyne_a service_n of_o the_o church_n usual_o be_v read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v to_o we_o and_o pour_v some_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n &_o tongue_n to_o express_v our_o affection_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n three_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o mass_n or_o collect_v be_v common_a minister_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o all_o hearer_n of_o god_n service_n shall_v repose_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o she_o more_o please_v god_n &_o be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o he_o as_o a_o most_o belove_a spouse_n to_o her_o husband_n than_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o private_a man_n four_o the_o end_n of_o mass_n and_o divyne_a service_n be_v common_a to_o all_o whether_o he_o understand_v or_o no_o for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o mass_n &_o the_o church_n intention_n be_v know_v to_o all_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o edification_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n marie_n &_o all_o his_o saint_n and_o therefore_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o have_v divyne_a service_n in_o latin_a see_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o three_o chief_a tongue_n which_o christ_n sanctify_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o we_o appertain_v to_o the_o latin_a church_n etc._n etc._n qvaestio_n xx._n of_o the_o aue_fw-la maria._n how_o do_v the_o simple_a papist_n think_v that_o they_o pray_v when_o they_o rehearse_v the_o angelical_a salutation_n say_v aue_fw-la maria_fw-la aue_fw-la maria._n caluin_n in_o harm_n euang._n etc._n etc._n answer_n the_o catholic_n papist_n commit_v no_o foolishness_n while_o they_o repeat_v the_o angelical_a salutation_n as_o a_o true_a prayer_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o prayer_n consist_v in_o two_o part_n the_o on_o be_v in_o give_v of_o thanks_o and_o the_o other_o in_o prayer_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o affect_v folly_n or_o superstition_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a because_o there_o be_v many_o psalm_n of_o david_n that_o be_v only_a action_n of_o thanks_n and_o yet_o be_v nomber_v among_o ecclesiastical_a prayer_n also_o they_o be_v number_v by_o their_o own_o judgement_n in_o the_o psalmist_n &_o in_o this_o manner_n be_v paul_n and_o sylas_n at_o midnight_n praise_v and_o pray_v our_o lord_n act._n 16._o v._n 25._o for_o the_o petition_n &_o desire_n be_v include_v in_o the_o prayer_n itself_o moreover_o the_o minor_a be_v evident_a first_o because_o while_o we_o repeat_v that_o prayer_n we_o commemorate_fw-la the_o benefit_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o thanks_n give_v therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v and_o adjudge_v for_o a_o prayer_n second_o it_o be_v a_o prayer_n implicit_a by_o way_n of_o insinuation_n as_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o leprous-man_n to_o christ_n say_v lord_n if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v make_v i_o clean_o matth._n 8_o five_o 2._o to_o who_o christ_n answer_v condiscend_v to_o his_o inward_a desire_n and_o private_a prayer_n say_v i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_a even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n whyl_v we_o repeat_v this_o salutation_n we_o praythe_a mother_n of_o god_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o we_o implicit_o three_o the_o holy_a church_n have_v put_v to_o this_o a_o formal_a and_o express_a prayer_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o salutation_n say_v holy_a mother_n of_o god_n pray_v for_o we_o now_o and_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o death_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o true_a prayer_n howsoever_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o bless_a mother_n whisper_z and_o murmur_v against_o she_o objection_n if_o the_o angelical_a salutation_n be_v allow_v of_o the_o catholic_n for_o a_o prayer_n ergo_fw-la when_o the_o angel_n salute_v the_o virgin_n he_o pray_v to_o she_o answer_n the_o sequel_n be_v absurd_a for_o altough_o he_o salute_v she_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o pray_v to_o she_o as_o when_o the_o action_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v of_o a_o diverse_a intention_n &_o end_n it_o acquire_v a_o diverse_a name_n and_o action_n according_a to_o philosophical_a axiom_n saying_n actus_fw-la accepit_fw-la speciem_fw-la ab_fw-la obiecto_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o deed_n take_v his_o form_n of_o the_o object_n as_o for_o example_n when_o any_o man_n shall_v give_v a_o alm_n for_o the_o succour_n of_o his_o nyghbour_n this_o intention_n and_o end_n of_o his_o work_n be_v observe_v of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o object_n in_o that_o he_o be_v his_o nyghbour_n &_o poor_a and_o in_o the_o other_o when_o any_o man_n shall_v give_v a_o alm_n to_o deceive_v his_o nyghbour_n the_o first_o be_v meritorious_a but_o in_o the_o second_o he_o demerit_n even_o so_o the_o intention_n and_o end_n of_o the_o angel_n salutation_n it_o be_v congratulatory_a in_o that_o she_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o convince_v in_o this_o to_o have_v pray_v to_o she_o but_o by_o the_o same_o axiom_n to_o have_v salute_v she_o objection_n the_o papist_n usurp_v a_o other_o office_n which_o be_v wrong_n while_o they_o salut_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n they_o usurp_v the_o office_n of_o the_o angel_n therefore_o they_o sin_n in_o make_v this_o salutation_n which_o be_v not_o proper_a for_o they_o to_o do_v but_o the_o angel_n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o usurp_n of_o a_o other_o office_n this_o be_v invent_v of_o caluin_n own_o head_n but_o athan._n in_o euamgel_n de_fw-fr dei_fw-la para_fw-it say_v that_o all_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o celestial_a hierarchy_n do_v incessant_o sing_v in_o heaven_n this_o glorious_a and_o unspeakable_a hymn_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o follow_v that_o not_o only_o this_o
and_o water_n side_n go_v about_o to_o stoup_n all_o other_o water_n round_o about_o and_o do_v set_v scar_n crow_n over_o they_o that_o the_o poor_a bird_n not_o know_v where_o to_o make_v succourse_n to_o find_v water_n not_o of_o choose_v but_o of_o very_a necessity_n at_o last_o most_o light_a in_o their_o snayre_n which_o evident_o appear_v in_o the_o heretic_n of_o this_o age_n ever_o with_o heresy_n to_o have_v malice_n adjoin_v with_o it_o as_o experience_n have_v prove_v in_o scotland_n that_o in_o the_o beginning_n heresy_n be_v so_o delectable_a to_o the_o whole_a estait_fw-fr of_o the_o land_n after_z with_o what_o subtlety_n policy_n and_o craft_n it_o be_v establish_v in_o so_o far_o that_o it_o be_v point_o register_v in_o the_o book_n of_o parlamét_v &_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v act_v word_n to_o word_n for_o a_o perpetual_a memory_n &_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v co-act_a to_o sweir_n &_o to_o subscrive_v this_o new_a faith_n who_o refuse_v either_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a they_o malice_n invy_n hatred_n and_o blasphemy_n must_v force_v then_o what_o by_o excommunication_n &_o horn_n or_o by_o prisonement_n confiscation_n of_o good_n exill_o or_o death_n they_o believe_v no_o man_n who_o onse_n they_o conceive_v jealousy_n of_o their_o malice_n be_v in_o reconciliable_a that_o they_o be_v in_o will_n &_o desire_v after_o the_o mind_n of_o caligula_n who_o wish_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o roman_n to_o stand_v on_o man_n body_n that_o at_o one_o blooe_n he_o may_v beheade_n they_o al._n and_o therefore_o to_o effectuate_v their_o malicious_a desire_n and_o that_o the_o poison_n of_o their_o hart_n may_v be_v make_v know_v they_o ewomat_v clamorous_a railling_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n &_o all_o catholic_a people_n that_o thereby_o the_o ignorant_a be_v onse_n snare_v in_o their_o heresy_n anon_o be_v drounk_v with_o the_o same_o poison_n of_o blasphmy_n fury_n hatred_n and_o malice_n against_o catholic_n and_o priest_n that_o they_o be_v like_v make_v and_o frent_v people_n and_o that_o they_o come_v home_o from_o their_o sermond_n no_o less_o fierce_a and_o fiery_a than_o sogere_n from_o the_o warlike_a speech_n of_o their_o captain_n exhort_v they_o to_o the_o fight_n or_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o citizen_n of_o abdera_n that_o onse_n hear_v a_o furious_a tragedy_n in_o a_o heat_n summer_n day_n they_o be_v so_o strike_v with_o such_o a_o fit_a of_o frenzy_n through_o the_o vehement_a heat_n of_o the_o son_n that_o many_o day_n they_o do_v nothing_o but_o act_v the_o same_o tragedy_n with_o furious_a gesture_n in_o there_o strait_n be_v not_o the_o lyk_fw-mi tragedy_n act_v in_o s._n johnstoun_n and_o through_o all_o scotland_n in_o what_o frenzy_n and_o madness_n be_v the_o people_n that_o in_o one_o year_n they_o raise_v throwdown_o and_o demolise_v all_o the_o abbaye_v church_n chapel_n be_v and_o hospital_n in_o the_o whole_a land_n with_o perseverance_n in_o blaspheme_v condemn_a skoff_a frete_v raige_v and_o moke_a god_n &_o his_o church_n these_o holy_a puritan_n sancts_n be_v full_a of_o zeal_n to_o evomat_fw-la such_o heinous_a &_o abominable_a blasphemy_n for_o poor_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n dissemble_v credit_n and_o honesty_n who_o be_v know_v enemy_n they_o want_v in_o their_o sermon_n and_o make_v ample_a disgression_n to_o geet_v with_o man_n of_o small_a judgement_n the_o name_n of_o a_o great_a preachour_n &_o to_o be_v call_v a_o cunning_a clerk_n that_o as_o s._n austen_n say_v any_o man_n of_o very_o small_a learning_n may_v do_v the_o same_o to_o prate_v upon_o palpable_a folly_n and_o to_o be_v invective_n which_o custom_n be_v deduce_v from_o the_o manicheis_n who_o make_v long_a sermon_n with_o much_o gravity_n long_a grace_n etc._n etc._n against_o who_o s._n aug._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr morib_n eccl_n c._n 10._o write_v adiudging_a suchlyke_a toy_n wicked_a which_o do_v no_o way_n concern_v we_o for_o they_o speak_v upon_o old_a wife_n taille_n and_o childish_a babble_n for_o in_o that_o in_o which_o they_o be_v most_o earnest_a in_o approve_v and_o confute_v matter_n of_o religion_n against_o that_o catholic_n the_o more_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o want_v judgement_n and_o whosoever_o be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v of_o they_o to_o follow_v heresy_n condemn_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o show_v himself_o ignorant_a &_o to_o lack_v judgement_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o heresy_n be_v to_o blind_v the_o understanding_n and_o induce_v ignorance_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n cyp._n lib._n 1_o epist_n 3_o say_v that_o of_o they_o who_o be_v profane_a &_o out_o of_o the_o church_n no_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v but_o a_o depravat_fw-la mind_n a_o deceitful_a tongue_n canker_a malice_n and_o sacrilegious_a lie_n whosoever_o shall_v give_v credit_n to_o these_o professor_n shall_v suffer_v with_o they_o the_o sentence_n of_o damnation_n at_o christ_n come_v to_o judge_n the_o world_n in_o like_o manner_n s._n austen_n serm_n 22._o de_fw-fr verb._n apost_n declare_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o perversitie_n of_o heretic_n &_o with_o what_o malice_n and_o hatred_n satan_n have_v spyre_v they_o that_o they_o so_o continue_v in_o their_o wicked_a course_n against_o conscience_n &_o all_o moral_a reason_n be_v more_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o world_n than_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n or_o love_n of_o their_o soul_n lest_o there_o religion_n be_v detect_v and_o discover_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o they_o why_o have_v you_o deceive_v we_o so_o long_o why_o do_v you_o seduce_v we_o wherefore_o tell_v you_o we_o so_o many_o false_a thing_n regard_v more_o the_o weakness_n of_o man_n to_o reprehend_v their_o folly_n than_o the_o invinciblenes_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o must_v prevail_v who_o description_n of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n be_v not_o neadfull_a to_o be_v produce_v of_o we_o catholics_n when_o sufficient_o of_o luther_n &_o other_o they_o be_v describe_v as_o one_fw-mi anatomy_n to_o the_o object_n of_o all_o beholder_n as_o report_n theod._n fabrit_fw-mi in_o locis_fw-la comm_n in_o art_n luth._o pag._n 4._o &_o 5_o saying_n the_o nature_n of_o these_o vipere_n be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v cavil_v deceatful_o with_o word_n make_v the_o scripture_n a_o noise_n of_o wax_n they_o show_v their_o impious_a &_o ingenious_a spirit_n to_o turn_v and_o alter_v the_o sense_n by_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o they_o be_v admirable_a doctor_n surpass_v in_o skill_n &_o wite_v of_o all_o the_o learned_a and_o profound_a man_n of_o this_o world_n for_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o a_o malignant_a spirit_n w_o h_z do_v possess_v &_o be_v which_o their_o wit_n &_o be_v inradge_v with_o satanical_a virulency_n against_o god_n church_n and_o her_o professor_n they_o can_v eshew_v but_o must_v interpret_v the_o scripture_n wrong_v for_o in_o this_o they_o be_v for_o all_o the_o world_n like_o spidder_n that_o suck_v poison_n out_o of_o fair_a and_o fragrant_a flour_n the_o venom_n not_o be_v in_o the_o flour_n but_o in_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o as_o heresy_n must_v be_v it_o be_v not_o without_o our_o profit_n to_o wit_n for_o our_o instruction_n see_v that_o heresy_n be_v and_o suffer_v to_o be_v to_o that_o intent_n that_o they_o who_o be_v perfect_a in_o his_o church_n may_v be_v know_v for_o by_o heresy_n the_o church_n be_v try_v as_o gold_n be_v the_o fire_n &_o as_o the_o sea_z that_o be_v move_v with_o tempest_n cast_v out_o his_o froth_n &_o filth_n the_o poor_a water_n keep_v his_o bo●ds_n &_o course_n so_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o tribulation_n and_o storm_n of_o heresy_n voyde_n away_o the_o fooll_n &_o unclean_a member_n out_o of_o she_o the_o sound_n and_o faithful_a remain_n under_o her_o catholic_a rowfe_n &_o abide_v in_o the_o faith_n onse_fw-fr receive_v and_o believe_v for_o in_o time_n of_o heresy_n &_o schism_n the_o part_n of_o every_o good_a christian_a man_n must_v be_v to_o do_v as_o good_a soger_n to_o run_v to_o their_o captain_n &_o general_n look_v to_o he_o &_o expect_v to_o be_v direct_v how_o and_o when_o to_o strike_v &_o as_o the_o modest_a and_o gentle_a passager_n when_o the_o tempest_n &_o storm_n arise_v to_o disordre_fw-fr their_z passage_n suffere_n with_o hearty_o mind_n the_o master_n to_o cruel_a the_o stern_a meddle_v not_o with_o that_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o skill_n of_o even_o so_o when_o privy_a rebel_n and_o wicked_a member_n of_o christian_a religion_n sow_v seditious_a schism_n and_o preach_v heresy_n trouble_v thereby_o the_o quiet_a &_o settle_a conscience_n of_o true_a believer_n every_o christian_a man_n &_o especial_o the_o lai_o &_o inferior_a sort_n ought_v to_o cleave_v to_o their_o head_n and_o rueler_n in_o christ_n church_n meddle_v not_o with_o any_o
bishopes_n unto_o this_o present_a day_n from_o the_o very_a seat_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n commend_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n after_o his_o resurrection_n to_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n of_o the_o present_a bishop_n and_o last_o the_o name_n catholic_n do_v hold_v i_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n not_o without_o cause_n the_o church_n have_v retain_v the_o name_n catholic_n which_o name_n this_o church_n have_v always_o not_o without_o cause_n among_o so_o many_o different_a sect_n of_o heresy_n in_o such_o sort_n obtain_v that_o although_o all_o heretic_n desire_v to_o be_v call_v catholic_n yet_o if_o a_o stranger_n shall_v demand_v where_o be_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n catholic_a no_o heresy_n can_v show_v their_o church_n for_o catholic_a the_fw-mi be_v no_o heretik_a that_o dare_v assign_v he_o his_o temple_n or_o his_o preiching-hous_n for_o catholic_n likewise_o in_o his_o symbol_n say_v he_o we_o do_v believe_v the_o holy_a church_n that_o be_v catholic_a for_o the_o heretic_n &_o schismatics_n do_v call_v their_o congregation_n church_n but_o the_o heretic_n beleve_v those_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o be_v false_a church_n heretic_n by_o error_n do_v violat_a the_o faith_n schismatic_n by_o make_v division_n violate_v unity_n they_o apertein_a not_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v violate_v the_o faith_n &_o the_o schismatics_n by_o unlawful_a division_n do_v separat_fw-la themselves_o from_o brotherly_a charity_n although_o they_o believe_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o same_o with_o us._n and_o for_o this_o cause_n neither_o do_v the_o heretic_n or_o schismatics_n apertain_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o s._n aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccle_n c._n 4._o say_v all_o those_o that_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n in_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o have_v suffer_v &_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n &_o the_o only_a immutable_a word_n of_o the_o father_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o do_v in_o such_o sort_n dissent_n from_o his_o body_n which_o be_v his_o church_n that_o their_o communion_n be_v not_o withal_o they_o with_o who_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v participate_v but_o be_v in_o some_o divide_a part_n it_o be_v a_o manifest_a token_n that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o likewise_o prosper_v say_v that_o he_o who_o do_v communicate_v catholic_n he_o who_o accord_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o catholik_n under_o s._n cyprian_n the_o people_n where_o call_v catholic_n with_o this_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o catholic_n &_o he_o that_o do_v not_o communicate_v be_v a_o heretik_a &_o a_o antichrist_n and_o pacianus_n say_v the_o people_n under_o s._n cyprian_n charge_v have_v never_o be_v call_v otherways_o than_o catholic_n now_o among_o these_o testimony_n what_o place_n have_v our_o reform_a to_o be_v name_v with_o a_o catholic_a title_n who_o as_o s._n aug._n say_v dissension_n and_o division_n make_v heretic_n and_o again_o in_o his_o epist._n 152._o ad_fw-la donatist_n whosoever_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v he_o how_o laudable_a soever_o he_o seem_v to_o live_v for_o this_o only_a crime_n church_n no_o heretik_a nor_o schismatik_a how_o soever_o he_o live_v well_o can_v not_o be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v only_o separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v be_v also_o seclude_v from_o lyf_v and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v remain_v on_o he_o this_o same_o argument_n have_v fulgentius_n lib._n the_o fid_fw-we ad_fw-la pet._n diac_n cap._n 29_o saying_n hold_v for_o most_o certain_a and_o doubt_v not_o in_o any_o manner_n that_o no_o heretik_a or_o schismatik_a baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n &_o holy_a ghost_n if_o he_o be_v not_o in_o unity_n with_o the_o catholik-church_n although_o he_o give_v great_a alm_n and_o shede_v his_o very_a blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o can_v he_o in_o no_o wise_n be_v save_v thus_o the_o father_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n whole_o affirm_v how_o so_o ever_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n in_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o belief_n and_o in_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o not_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v not_o be_v save_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o modern_a heresy_n that_o deny_v the_o artikle_n of_o their_o belief_n thaire_n the_o ignorance_n of_o heresy_n to_o pretend_v which_o be_v no_o thaire_n and_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n in_o add_v &_o diminish_v in_o gloss_v and_o comment_v in_o change_v and_o chap_a and_o yet_o will_v pretend_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o her_o name_n but_o in_o vain_a as_o s._n augustin_n say_v to_o the_o donatist_n you_o accord_n with_o we_o in_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o belief_n and_o in_o all_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o peace_n and_o last_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o no_o heresy_n can_v ever_o attain_v to_o the_o name_n catholic_n how_o soever_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v it_o you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o and_o therefore_o heretic_n separate_v and_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n and_o nothing_o pertinent_a to_o this_o name_n catholik_n for_o we_o see_v evidentlie_o this_o name_n keep_v s._n augustein_v in_o the_o right_a faith_n for_o no_o heretik_a can_v obtain_v the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o every_o heresy_n do_v much_o desyr_n to_o obtain_v it_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o all_o heresy_n be_v but_o part_n and_o peculiar_a sect_n of_o some_o country_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o small_a tyme._n profession_n the_o word_n catholic_a betokenes_n one_fw-mi universal_a profession_n where_o as_o the_o word_n catholic_n do_v betoken_v a_o certain_a universal_a profession_n endure_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o the_o end_n and_o spread_v abroad_o through_o all_o part_n but_o those_o who_o begin_v their_o doctrine_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v ever_o name_v of_o their_o mastere_n sect_n the_o heresy_n have_v their_o name_n of_o the_o inventor_n of_o that_o sect_n as_o the_o arian_n of_o arrius_n the_o lutheran_n of_o luther_n and_o the_o caluinist_n of_o caluin_n but_o they_o in_o the_o contrary_n be_v call_v catholic_n who_o keep_v the_o universal_a faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v first_o teach_v and_o which_o be_v continue_v always_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o for_o that_o s._n augustin_n tract_n 22._o in_o joh._n we_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n name_n he_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o keep_v unity_n and_o give_v we_o rejoice_v of_o the_o faith_n with_o the_o name_n if_o we_o love_v the_o church_n and_o if_o we_o be_v knit_v and_o conjoin_v together_o by_o charity_n if_o we_o do_v all_o exalt_v and_o rejoice_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_n as_o well_o in_o faith_n as_o in_o name_n here_o upon_o pacianus_n epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la symphron_n say_v be_v not_o angry_a good_a brother_n and_o do_v not_o afflict_v thyself_o a_o christian_n be_v my_o name_n surname_n the_o word_n christian_n be_v the_o forname_n and_o the_o word_n catholic_n be_v the_o surname_n and_o a_o catholic_a be_v my_o surname_n by_o the_o former_a i_o be_o call_v and_o by_o the_o second_o i_o be_o make_v manifest_a therefore_o this_o name_n be_v no_o way_n attribute_v to_o those_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o this_o name_n and_o have_v it_o in_o scorn_n and_o mockery_n that_o justly_o they_o discover_v there_o corrupt_a affection_n catholik_n the_o corrupt_a affection_n of_o heretic_n to_o this_o name_n catholik_n and_o heretical_a malice_n towards_o the_o word_n in_o so_o much_o that_o some_o of_o they_o call_v it_o a_o void_a and_o vain_a word_n some_o again_o a_o graceless_a term_n &_o fruitless_a name_n so_o the_o old_a heretic_n as_o s._n august_n cont_n gaud._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o say_n call_v it_o a_o human_a fiction_n catholik_n their_o intention_n be_v to_o put_v out_o of_o memory_n the_o name_n catholik_n by_o their_o evil_a nature_n and_o quality_n they_o geve_v diligence_n to_o abolish_v and_o extinguish_v both_o the_o verity_n of_o our_o faith_n &_o the_o name_n consonant_n thereunto_o therefore_o their_o name_n declare_v they_o sufficient_o what_o they_o be_v prognosticate_a of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v &_o as_o justinus_n in_o triphone_o say_v cáme_v heretic_n be_v prognosticat_fw-la to_o come_v before_o they_o cáme_v there_o shall_v arise_v many_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o they_o shall_v seduce_v many_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o be_v distinguish_v among_o we_o take_v their_o name_n of_o certane_v man_n as_o every_o on_o be_v author_n of_o
consequent_o from_o god_n himself_o for_o as_o s._n august_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n objection_n our_o faith_n be_v pure_a reform_a and_o be_v catholik_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v free_a of_o the_o error_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o papistis_fw-mi and_o therefore_o this_o our_o reformation_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v and_o be_v more_o catholik_n than_o the_o papist_n faith_n be_v ansver_n too_o late_o have_v thou_o spring_v up_o vain_a boaster_n that_o with_o these_o vain_a word_n and_o suchlyk_fw-mi illusiones_fw-la thou_o labores_fw-la to_o seduce_v and_o blind_a so_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n or_o perchance_o thou_o think_v they_o to_o be_v child_n lie_v in_o craddle_v that_o in_o sing_v of_o such_o trifle_a song_n thou_o can_v make_v they_o slumber_n or_o rather_o stumble_v temporal_a the_o protestant_n reformation_n admit_v no_o power_n spiritual_a or_o temporal_a what_o purity_n ●s_v in_o your_o faith_n how_o reform_v and_o how_o long_a catholic_a that_o more_o justly_o it_o may_v be_v call_v deform_v and_o the_o in_o bringer_n of_o all_o deformation_n and_o destruction_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a powere_n the_o which_o reformation_n admit_v no_o policy_n and_o no_o ecclesiastical_a form_n but_o damn_v the_o rite_n of_o all_o former_a age_n deride_v the_o cannone_n of_o the_o church_n father_n they_o deride_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o scoff_n at_o the_o father_n mock_n and_o scoff_n the_o holy_a father_n howsoever_o they_o be_v near_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o evidence_n do_v not_o cal._n lib._n 3._o instit_fw-la cap._n 4._o §_o 38._o condemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o book_n be_v extant_a in_o speak_v of_o satisfaction_n and_o that_o in_o his_o four_o book_n of_o instit_fw-la cap._n 12._o §_o 20._o say_v he_o church_n caluin_n condennes_n the_o ancient_a father_n and_o press_v they_o to_o have_v sow_o superstition_n in_o the_o church_n in_o all_o he_o will_v not_o excuse_v the_o ancient_a father_n but_o that_o they_o have_v sow_v the_o seed_n of_o superstition_n and_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o tyranny_n which_o thereafter_o a_o rose_n in_o the_o church_n and_o than_o forth_o with_o begin_v the_o superstitious_a observance_n of_o lent_n thus_o he_o and_o thus_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o bolster_v heresy_n for_o treuth_n and_o verity_n it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o renovation_n of_o old_a damn_a heresy_n harken_v good_a friend_n and_o i_o shall_v declare_v the_o assumption_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o reformation_n first_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n visible_a in_o all_o the_o country_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o reform_a church_n opinion_n to_o have_v perish_v and_o to_o remain_v and_o a_o bide_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o world_n obscure_a and_o hide_v of_o this_o mind_n be_v the_o donatist_n as_o witness_v opt._n meleu_o lib._n 2._o count_v parm_n and_o s._n ang._n lib._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccl._n cap._n 12._o this_o same_o doctrine_n of_o reform_a faith_n reformer_n the_o church_n to_o have_v perish_v be_v the_o old_a heretic_n opinion_n with_o the_o reformer_n have_v caluin_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v perish_v and_o remain_v invisible_a against_o the_o plain_a tenor_n of_o the_o scripture_n cal._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o §_o 2._o secondlie_o the_o arrianes_n teach_v the_o son_n not_o to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o father_n in_o deity_n as_o witness_v epiph._n heresy_n 69._o father_n the_o soon_o be_v not_o equal_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o same_o ground_n have_v caluin_n for_o his_o reformation_n lib._n 2._o inst_z c._n 14._o §_o 3._o sin_n god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n thirdlie_o florinus_n hold_v opinion_n god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n as_o euseb_n lib._n 5._o c._n 20._o and_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v stout_o defend_v of_o caluin_n lib._n 1._o just_a cap_n 18_o §_o 4_o 5._o &_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 15._o §_o 16._o faith_n man_n be_v instify_v by_o only_o faith_n fourtly_n man_n to_o be_v iustify_v and_o save_v by_o only_a faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o simon_n magus_n and_o eunomius_n as_o s._n aug._n haer_fw-mi 54._o &_o iren._n lib._n 1_o cap._n 20._o the_o same_o doctrine_n teach_v luth._o in_o serm._n de_fw-la piscat_fw-la petri_n we_o shall_v come_v only_o with_o ysaac_n say_v he_o that_o be_v with_o faith_n and_o the_o servant_n and_o ass_n that_o be_v work_n it_o behow_v to_o leave_v they_o below_o and_o a_o side_n and_o in_o a_o other_o sermon_n in_o that_o subject_n sic_fw-la deus_fw-la dilexit_fw-la mundum_fw-la if_o thou_o come_v say_v he_o with_o sack_n full_a of_o good_a work_n it_o behove_v thou_o to_o lay_v they_o down_o otherways_o thou_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o caluin_n there_o make_v his_o brag_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o inst_z cap_n 11._o §_o 14._o now_o plain_o the_o reader_n do_v behold_v say_v he_o with_o what_o oequitie_n the_o sophistical_a papist_n do_v cavil_n and_o judge_v our_o religion_n when_o we_o say_v aman_n be_v justify_v by_o only_a faith_n freewill_n man_n have_v no_o freewill_n fyftlie_o manicheus_fw-la condemn_v and_o deny_v frewill_n as_o s._n aug._n haeres_fw-la 49._o the_o same_o have_v luther_n renew_v as_o in_o his_o book_n of_o servile_a will_v count_v eras_n and_o suchlyk_fw-mi cal._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o §_o 4._o this_o name_n of_o frewill_n have_v ever_o be_v extant_a with_o the_o latin_n but_o with_o the_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o word_n much_o more_o arrogant_a merit_n marriage_n and_o virginity_n be_v alyk_fw-mi in_o merit_n sixthly_a jovinian_a make_v marriage_n alike_o in_o dignity_n and_o merit_n to_o virginity_n and_o plain_o to_o have_v teach_v fast_v and_o abstinence_n to_o be_v of_o no_o merit_n as_o s._n hier._n observe_v lib._n 1._o &_o 2._o cont_n jovian_a these_o same_o subject_n teach_v luther_n and_o caluin_n luther_n in_o his_o epithalamio_fw-la and_o cal._n lib._n 4._o c._n 12._o §_o 19_o &_o cap._n 13._o §_o 3._o what_o if_o i_o shall_v repeat_v the_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o albigense_n walden_n wiclif_n hussite_n abailarde_n baer●●_n garian_n almarik_n and_o suchlyk_fw-mi abominable_a sect_n condemn_v long_o since_o of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o all_o general_a counsel_n accurse_v and_o yet_o not_o withstand_v these_o be_v the_o patroness_n heretic_n the_o old_a heretic_n be_v the_o patroness_n of_o the_o new_a heretic_n and_o rabbi_n of_o the_o reform_a who_o be_v renewer_n of_o heresy_n inventor_n of_o novalty_n who_o begininge_n and_o progress_n be_v know_v to_o be_v wrap_v in_o errore_fw-la and_o superstition_n while_o they_o think_v to_o be_v free_a be_v snare_v in_o blindnese_n of_o understanding_n and_o in_o hardness_n of_o hart_n hart_n they_o be_v blind_a through_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o hart_n and_o endure_v go_v headlong_o to_o perdition_n as_o reprobate_v of_o god_n through_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o own_o hart_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n censure_n and_o judge_v with_o equity_n the_o reform_a they_o have_v no_o faith_n no_o religion_n no_o name_n but_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n as_o caluinist_n and_o lutheran_n and_o of_o suchlyk_fw-mi monster_n already_o condemn_v and_o therefore_o for_o conclusion_n let_v the_o catholic_a roman_a faith_n live_v and_o reign_v to_o who_o camp_n i_o admon_v she_o all_o adversary_n not_o to_o approach_v for_o treve_o it_o be_v pleasant_a and_o delectable_a to_o be_v a_o protestant_n but_o more_o secure_a to_o die_v a_o catholik_n therefore_o let_v every_o good_a christian_a eschew_v and_o flee_v from_o the_o lutheran_n and_o galuiniste_n who_o be_v particular_a sect_n see_v each_o little_a gentle_a reader_n flee_v the_o heretic_n for_o they_o promise_v much_o and_o porforme_v but_o little_a one_o of_o they_o promiss_v with_o faustus_n manicheus_fw-la to_o give_v a_o new_a illumination_n and_o a_o new_a reformation_n every_o on_o of_o they_o endevore_v to_o draw_v the_o into_o his_o sect_n but_o take_v heed_n and_o be_v warn_v and_o cry_v with_o s._n hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la damas_n meletius_n vitalis_n and_o paulinus_n also_o luther_n caluin_n and_o rotman_n and_o all_o other_o sectary_n do_v say_v that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a and_o christian_a faith_n so_o say_v the_o heretic_n of_o old_a so_o say_v the_o modern_a perchance_o aman_n may_v believe_v if_o one_o say_v it_o but_o two_o and_o three_o do_v say_v and_o they_o all_o do_v lie_v what_o hunt_v make_v they_o to_o make_v a_o proselyte_n and_o a_o child_n of_o hell_n o_o time_n o_o maneres_fw-la o_o monster_n what_o absurdity_n follow_v this_o new_a reformation_n as_o be_v rehearse_v that_o christian_a man_n be_v
how_o the_o reform_v believe_v this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n sin_n cal._n doctrine_n can_v not_o agree_v &_o accord_v with_o this_o article_n good_a work_n be_v sin_n see_v that_o they_o say_v that_o all_o our_o work_n be_v mix_v and_o defile_v with_o sin_n and_o what_o soever_o good_a work_n shall_v be_v do_v of_o the_o most_o holy_a man_n by_o the_o uncleanness_n and_o the_o impurity_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v pollute_v corrupt_a and_o putrify_v free_a man_n be_v not_o free_a neither_o of_o original_n nor_o actual_a sin_n by_o any_o sacrament_n only_o faith_n by_o imputative_a justice_n make_v man_n free_a lyckwise_o he_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o free_a of_o original_a sin_n neither_o be_v we_o absolve_v or_o remit_v from_o any_o other_o sin_n howsoever_o confess_v and_o satisfy_v but_o only_o cover_v by_o the_o imputative_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v these_o sin_n impute_v to_o the_o fault_n nor_o to_o the_o punishment_n as_o rabbi-caluin_a teach_v lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 14._o §_o 9.10_o 11._o &_o lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 15._o §_o the_o which_o doctrine_n do_v subvert_v and_o overthrow_v the_o very_a article_n of_o our_o creed_n to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n justice_n cal._n reiecte_n the_o judgement_n of_o s._n aug_n concern_v sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a he_o teach_v that_o in_o the_o saint_n sin_n reign_v all_o the_o regenerate_a be_v in_o aid_n cleave_v by_o imputative_a justice_n which_o stout_o he_o defend_v by_o reject_v and_o cast_v of_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgement_n of_o s._n austen_n de_fw-fr concupiscentia_fw-la in_o renatis_fw-la we_o teach_v say_v he_o in_o the_o holy_a saint_n ever_o to_o be_v sin_n until_o they_o be_v free_v and_o unclothe_v of_o this_o mortal_a body_n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 3._o §_o 10._o and_o proceed_v more_o deep_o to_o justify_v his_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n move_v this_o doubt_n and_o solue_v it_o himself_o but_o how_o be_v it_o say_v he_o that_o god_n do_v purge_v his_o church_n of_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o promise_v to_o she_o the_o grace_n of_o freedom_n and_o purity_n by_o baptism_n and_o do_v fulfil_v it_o in_o his_o elect_a it_o be_v refer_v and_o fulfil_v in_o communicate_v his_o imputaviue_v justice_n and_o this_o god_n perform_v and_o exhibite_n in_o regenerate_v his_o own_o that_o in_o they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v &_o abolish_v by_o subministratinge_v to_o they_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o they_o be_v superior_a and_o victor_n in_o the_o fight_n lib._n 3._o instit_fw-la cap._n 3._o §_o 11._o doctrine_n sin_n to_o reign_n and_o not_o impute_v for_o a_o faust_z be_v false_a doctrine_n and_o a_o little_a after_o those_o relic_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o his_o saint_n we_o confess_v they_o not_o to_o be_v impute_v as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o which_o doctrine_n it_o follow_v sin_n absolutlie_v not_o to_o be_v remit_v for_o it_o implicate_v a_o contradiction_n sin_n to_o reign_n and_o not_o to_o be_v impute_v for_o a_o fault_n for_o caluin_n affirm_v dwell_v cal._n say_v sin_n reign_v not_o but_o dwell_v sin_n fail_v to_o reign_v in_o the_o saint_n but_o not_o to_o dwell_v as_o a_o other_o contradiction_n contrariwise_o catholic_n exhort_v all_o man_n firm_o to_o believe_v &_o assure_a lie_n confide_v that_o there_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o this_o remission_n be_v to_o we_o and_o to_o you_o and_o to_o judas_n the_o triator_n and_o to_o every_o mortal_a sinner_n and_o to_o those_o that_o now_o be_v and_o to_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o and_o to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o purgatory_n for_o christ_n have_v promerited_a to_o all_o abundantlie_o who_o hang_v in_o the_o cross_n be_v make_v a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o sin_n the_o catholic_n firm_o believe_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o that_o we_o catholic_n believe_v all_o man_n to_o have_v receive_v and_o obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la &_o sola_fw-la fide_fw-la credendo_fw-la not_o only_o we_o catholic_n deny_v and_o gainstand_v but_o also_o the_o scripture_n for_o treu_o christ_n have_v taste_v the_o death_n for_o all_o church_n but_o that_o all_o man_n have_v remission_n of_o sin_n de_fw-fr sacto_fw-la be_v against_o the_o scripture_n and_o christ_n death_n we_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n but_o all_o do_v not_o apply_v to_o they_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o most_o precious_a death_n for_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v make_v the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o but_o yet_o the_o scripture_n say_v heb._n 5._o v._o 9_o he_o be_v make_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n unto_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o therefore_o we_o believe_v most_o firm_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o not_o to_o be_v remit_v in_o particular_a by_o only_a faith_n but_o that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o remit_v sin_n and_o to_o retain_v sin_n howbeit_o we_o admit_v the_o heavenly_a promise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n justification_n and_o eternal_a life_n condition_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o make_v to_o any_o in_o particulat_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v to_o all_o a_o like_a &_o be_v make_v with_o condition_n and_o such_o like_a which_o general_o be_v denounce_v to_o perpeteyne_v to_o every_o man_n to_o wit_n so_o far_o as_o lie_v in_o god_n who_o without_o acception_n of_o person_n promiss_v and_o give_v to_o all_o man_n abundant_o but_o with_o that_o condition_n that_o he_o do_v worthy_a penance_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o ezech._n cap._n 18._o v._n 21._o if_o the_o ungodly_a man_n shall_v do_v penance_n for_o his_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v and_o shall_v keep_v my_o precept_n and_o do_v judgement_n and_o righteousness_n he_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n and_o shall_v not_o die_v and_o likewise_o matth._n cap._n 10._o v._n 22._o you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o man_n for_o my_o name_n sak_v but_o who_o shall_v persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v virtue_n no_o man_n be_v certain_a of_o perseverance_n in_o virtue_n but_o because_o a_o man_n be_v uncertain_a of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o perseverance_n in_o virtue_n and_o likewise_o uncertain_a of_o his_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n apocalyps_n 3._o v._n 11._o hold_v fast_o what_o thou_o have_v that_o no_o man_n take_v thy_o crown_n for_o there_o have_v fall_v saul_n solomon_n iscariotes_n turk_n many_o have_v fall_v &_o those_o they_o stand_v as_o of_o the_o caluin_n some_o be_v make_v turk_n paulus_n alciatus_fw-la sartor_n blandrata_n socimus_n lysmannus_n luther_n calu._n and_o many_o more_o of_o the_o protestants_n companious_a abiuringe_v their_o faith_n be_v fall_v to_o turkism_n mahematisme_n and_o atheism_n as_o witness_v beza_n in_o the_o history_n of_o valentine_n gentille_n and_o caluino-turcismus_a lib_n 1._o cap._n 2._o whereupon_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o great_a maxim_n of_o the_o caluiniste_n theology_n be_v fall_v and_o be_v conunice_v of_o falsehood_n affirm_v that_o only_a faith_n once_o get_v never_o do_v fail_v or_o decay_n as_o stout_o cudsemius_n in_o his_o hyperaspisce_n declare_v but_o when_o we_o see_v their_o own_o turn_v from_o their_o own_o faith_n to_o infidelity_n what_o judgement_n be_v against_o they_o and_o what_o condemnation_n fall_v they_o into_o no_o less_o treu_o than_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n and_o damnation_n of_o the_o heresiarche_n who_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n minister_v subject_n to_o paganism_n and_o atheism_n objection_n i._n therefore_o what_o do_v thou_o command_v and_o bid_v we_o despair_n answer_n god_n forbid_v for_o as_o we_o deny_v that_o any_o can_v firm_o believe_v &_o certainlye_o persuade_v himself_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n even_o so_o no_o less_o we_o affirm_v constant_o that_o every_o christian_a man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o with_o faith_n to_o do_v what_o be_v in_o he_o to_o expect_v the_o effect_n of_o faith_n hope_v what_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o hope_v with_o firm_a and_o sure_a hope_n in_o this_o lyf_v of_o true_a remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o penance_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v to_o eternal_a lyf_v which_o hope_n except_o we_o have_v it_o firm_a and_o constant_a in_o vain_a we_o be_v call_v christian_n objection_n ii_o thou_o speak_v a_o paradox_n and_o a_o contrary_a thing_n for_o firm_o to_o believe_v and_o assure_o to_o persuade_v thou_o deny_v and_o yet_o thou_o command_v and_o bid_v every_o one_o to_o be_v
their_o faith_n and_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o ethnike_v and_o infidel_n d●facto_fw-la nevertheless_o in_o name_n and_o external_a show_n they_o be_v within_o as_o holy_a scripture_n make_v mention_v as_o matth._n 13_o in_o the_o feyld_a of_o corn_n be_v together_o tare_n and_o wheat_n in_o the_o net_n good_a fish_n and_o bad_a in_o a_o house_n foolish_a and_o wise_a virgin_n even_o so_o such_o person_n have_v faith_n without_o work_n not_o obscur_o but_o plain_o do_v pertayn_v to_o the_o church_n howbeit_o they_o be_v damn_v therefore_o it_o hap_v to_o faith_n without_o charity_n either_o to_o be_v formal_a or_o informal_a but_o the_o effect_n and_o virtue_n depend_v in_o his_o will_n in_o who_o charity_n be_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n charity_n the_o effect_n of_o faith_n depend_v in_o his_o will_n in_o who_o be_v charity_n the_o heretic_n force_v falsy_n the_o contrary_a be_v deceive_v for_o whilst_o they_o presuppose_v and_o judge_v with_o themselves_o that_o true_a faith_n chief_o be_v place_v in_o only_a persuasion_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v persuade_v &_o certain_o assure_v himself_o because_o of_o the_o imputative_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la that_o his_o sin_n be_v remit_v to_o he_o and_o that_o grace_n and_o charity_n concomitant_a be_v infuse_v into_o his_o soul_n with_o his_o assure_a persuasion_n of_o only_a faith_n faith_n the_o heretic_n foolish_a persuasion_n concern_v faith_n &_o that_o this_o persuasion_n in_o their_o judgement_n be_v a_o most_o true_a thing_n neither_o think_v they_o ever_o at_o any_o time_n that_o this_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o grace_n &_o charity_n which_o be_v false_a and_o absurd_a as_o we_o have_v before_o prove_v for_o they_o lie_v great_a weight_n upon_o a_o weak_a foundation_n and_o build_v castle_n upon_o a_o sandy-mount_a for_o it_o be_v not_o only_a faith_n that_o iustifyes_n a_o man_n nether_a be_v it_o ever_o annex_v &_o conjoin_v with_o charity_n &_o grace_n but_o be_v separate_v obiectio_fw-la faith_n consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o sanctification_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o faith_n can_v no_o way_n be_v separate_v from_o charity_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom_n 10_o v._o 10._o with_o the_o hart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n man_n confess_v to_o salvation_n answer_n the_o apostle_n understande_v not_o in_o these_o word_n sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n include_v charity_n but_o he_o say_v the_o hart_n believe_v to_o ryghteousnes_n in_o which_o word_n he_o plain_o signifi_v that_o faith_n be_v way_n and_o mean_a to_o get_v and_o obtain_v righteousness_n but_o this_o faith_n do_v not_o ever_o include_v necessary_o the_o actual_a stat_fw-la of_o righteousness_n and_o charity_n and_o therefore_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v in_o man_n without_o charity_n and_o so_o it_o be_v separate_v other_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o the_o good_a affection_n of_o will_n requisite_a in_o man_n to_o believe_v and_o not_o annex_v absolute_o to_o the_o action_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n obiectio_fw-la faict_o without_o work_n be_v dead_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v jac._n 2._o therefore_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v not_o a_o true_a man_n so_o neither_o be_v faith_n in_o sinneres_fw-la a_o true_a faith_n without_o work_n and_o charity_n ergo_fw-la faith_n and_o charity_n can_v be_v separate_v answer_n the_o apostle_n to_o the_o contrary_a assimilated_a and_o compare_v faith_n not_o to_o a_o dead_a man_n but_o he_o assimilate_v and_o compare_v such_o to_o a_o dead_a body_n as_o v._o 26._o for_o as_o the_o body_n say_v he_o without_o the_o spirit_n be_v dead_a concern_v the_o vital_a operation_n whereby_o it_o fail_v not_o to_o be_v a_o true_a body_n even_o so_o without_o work_n faith_n be_v dead_a concern_v the_o utility_n meryt_n and_o salvation_n albeyt_v it_o fail_v not_o to_o be_v true_a faith_n for_o the_o apostel_n affirm_v the_o devil_n to_o believe_v albeyt_v not_o to_o salvation_n how_o much_o more_o a_o sinner_n may_v believe_v and_o have_v true_a faith_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o his_o salvation_n because_o it_o be_v without_o work_n which_o be_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o vital_a spirit_n and_o so_o faith_n be_v separate_v from_o charity_n and_o compare_v to_o a_o dead_a man_n without_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o want_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o vital_a spirit_n and_o yet_o can_v be_v call_v otherwise_o then_o a_o body_n ergo_fw-la and_o so_o be_v faith_n objection_n the_o father_n in_o who_o doctrine_n thou_o papist_n so_o oft_o do_v boast_v teach_v faith_n without_o work_n not_o to_o be_v true_a faith_n as_o s._n cyp_n de_fw-fr simplic_a pral_a beda_n in_o cap._n 2._o jac._n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la ●rew_v faith_n be_v never_o without_o work_n answer_n the_o father_n deny_v such_o to_o be_v true_a faith_n that_o be_v not_o lively_a and_o perfect_a and_o to_o be_v such_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o laughter_n be_v not_o full_a joy_n yet_o it_o be_v account_v for_o joy_n and_o gladness_n so_o s_n hier._n cap._n 5._o ad_fw-la gal._n when_o charity_n be_v far_o of_o and_o suchlyke_a faith_n be_v remote_a and_o absent_a we_o say_v it_o be_v not_o perfect_a charity_n and_o true_a faith_n not_o that_o it_o be_v far_o of_o and_o absent_a as_o concern_v his_o essence_n but_o concern_v his_o perfection_n operation_n and_o life_n and_o hereupon_o the_o father_n teach_v the_o verity_n and_o the_o heretic_n lie_v and_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n qvaestio_n v._o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o miracle_n wherefore_o require_v the_o papist_n miracle_n of_o we_o for_o confirmation_n of_o our_o reform_a faith_n sing_v long_o since_o it_o be_v marvellous_o confirm_v of_o the_o apostel_n martyr_n confessores_fw-la so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o new_a miracle_n caluin_n praef_n instit_fw-la ad_fw-la franc._n gall_n reg_fw-la answer_n predestination_n luther_n attempt_v to_o raise_v the_o dead_a he_o also_o attempt_n to_o cast_v out_o devil_n if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v true_a from_o the_o apostle_n how_o flee_v they_o to_o extraordinary_a thing_n caluin_n make_v for_o a_o miracle_n of_o a_o live_a man_n a_o dead_a he_o will_v have_v wrought_v a_o miracle_n for_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n i_o ask_v wherefore_o luther_n that_o great_a prophet_n elias_n and_o a_o chief_n apostle_n yea_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n so_o call_v of_o his_o successores_fw-la for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o euangel_n make_v his_o recourse_n to_o miracle_n whilst_o he_o assay_v and_o attempt_v to_o raise_v from_o death_n one_o william_n nesone_n drown_v in_o the_o ryver_n of_o albus_n as_o staph._n in_o respon_n ult._n bear_v witness_v also_o he_o attempt_v to_o work_v a_o miracle_n in_o the_o cast_n out_o of_o a_o devil_n out_o of_o the_o possess_v but_o in_o vain_a wherefore_o i_o say_v go_v luther_n to_o use_v a_o extraordinary_a means_n if_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n &_o that_o miracle_n be_v not_o now_o necessary_a likewise_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n wherefore_o attempt_v caluin_n to_o work_v a_o miracle_n to_o raise_v a_o dead_a man_n who_o by_o caluine_n policy_n dissemble_v himself_o dead_a for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n and_o the_o preordination_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n as_o bol_n in_o vita_fw-la calu._n lib._n 13._o again_o i_o ask_v if_o caluin_n be_v scrupulous_a to_o sow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholyk_n faith_n yet_o wherefore_o induce_v he_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o if_o he_o have_v purge_v the_o error_n of_o the_o paptst_n church_n wherefore_o run_v he_o to_o work_v of_o a_o false_a miracle_n wonderful_a to_o the_o world_n lykwyse_o a_o certain_a ringleader_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n attempt_v to_o work_v a_o miracle_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o polonia_n who_o invyte_v all_o his_o fellow_n compagnions_n to_o be_v present_a at_o his_o baptism_n promyse_v to_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o from_o the_o heaven_n to_o confirm_v his_o baptism_n heaven_n a_o anabaptist_n in_o polonia_n attempt_v to_o cause_v the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v to_o prove_v his_o doctrine_n from_o heaven_n to_o be_v from_o heaven_n the_o day_n be_v prefix_v the_o place_n be_v appoint_v the_o rumour_n spread_v abroad_o all_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v this_o miracle_n and_o first_o of_o all_o this_o arch-heretick_n enter_v into_o the_o water_n but_o in_o place_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n anon_o the_o devil_n appare_v with_o a_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a countenance_n offer_v himself_o to_o they_o all_o devil_n the_o anabaptist_n be_v beat_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o take_v the_o heretic_n by_o the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n lifteth_z and_o carri_v he_o in_o the_o air_n let_v
church_n and_o approve_v by_o authority_n for_o true_a doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n and_o of_o they_o who_o have_v authority_n to_o judge_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n otherways_o their_o mission_n and_o doctrine_n can_v be_v receive_v nor_o believe_v who_o without_o this_o ordinary_a authority_n by_o themselves_o approve_v doctrine_n to_o be_v sufficient_a or_o insufficient_a and_o must_v be_v move_v themselves_o by_o some_o other_o preacher_n and_o his_o authority_n to_o believe_v and_o therefore_o if_o there_o want_v miracle_n i_o know_v not_o how_o they_o shall_v approve_v their_o doctrine_n discuss_v ambiguity_n resolve_v doubt_n never_o i_o say_v by_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o understand_v of_o their_o privy_a spirit_n but_o their_o doctrine_n shall_v ever_o be_v hold_v suspect_v same_o no_o doctrine_n can_v be_v know_v true_a without_o miracle_n zue_v affi_n mes_fw-fr the_o same_o and_o for_o the_o verity_n of_o this_o assertion_n zuing._n tom._n 2._o eccl_n say_v how_o many_o have_v usurp_v the_o function_n to_o preach_v and_o teach_v or_o to_o work_v miracle_n be_v call_v of_o god_n confirm_v by_o eléction_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o i_o hope_v zuingl_n have_v say_v as_o much_o as_o i_o will_v say_v that_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v necessaey_v &_o that_o thereby_o god_n work_v often_o time_n miracle_n for_o the_o maitayn_n of_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o both_o lawful_a mission_n and_o miracle_n be_v of_o god_n ordination_n the_o heretyck_n make_v themselves_o pastor_n without_o ordination_n to_o their_o shame_n and_o ignominy_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n contemn_v and_o blaspheme_v all_o lawful_a succession_n and_o ecclesiastical_a ordination_n call_v themselves_o and_o presume_v to_o govern_v without_o lawful_a ordination_n and_o take_v the_o name_n of_o bishop_n on_o they_o and_o no_o man_n gyve_v it_o to_o they_o as_o say_v s._n cyp._n de_fw-fr simpl._n prael_n they_o succeed_v to_o none_o but_o begin_v at_o themselves_o vocation_n heretic_n be_v profane_a person_n calu._n fly_v to_o extraordinary_a vocation_n and_o be_v profane_a and_o enemy_n to_o our_o lord_n peace_n and_o his_o divyne_a unity_n but_o caluin_n teach_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la eccl_n reform_v that_o god_n raise_v up_o pastor_n extraordinary_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n who_o shall_v restore_v his_o decay_a and_o ruinous_a church_n as_o long_o since_o he_o do_v in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o so_o in_o our_o time_n by_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n of_o man_n he_o have_v raise_v prophet_n and_o pastor_n for_o the_o build_n of_o his_o church_n as_o luther_n zuingl_n etc._n etc._n who_o commendation_n of_o their_o own_o brother_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v wonderful_a and_o first_o zuingl_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a pastor_n towit_n luth_o and_o zuingl_o bez._n to_o sanctezij_n call_v luther_n the_o wonderful_a instrument_n of_o god_n most_o heavenly_a inspire_v and_o a_o admirable_a servant_n of_o god_n in_o who_o who_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n know_v nothing_o jewel_n call_v he_o the_o most_o excellent_a man_n of_o god_n send_v of_o he_o to_o lyghten_v the_o world_n apoc._n part_n 4._o cap._n 4._o §_o 2._o mathesius_n call_v he_o the_o supreme_a father_n of_o the_o church_n con_v 8._o the_o lut_n pag._n 88_o amdorff_n say_v that_o there_o be_v none_o like_o in_o the_o world_n in_o spirit_n and_o faith_n wisdom_n and_o profunde_n knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n amdorff_n praef_n tom_fw-mi 1._o luther_n albertus_n call_v he_o a_o true_a paul_n and_o elyas_n and_o a_o man_n sufficient_a to_o appease_v and_o diverte_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o man_n to_o who_o augustin_n may_v think_v no_o shame_n to_o be_v his_o scholar_n lib._n count_v carollost_n lib._n 7._o some_o other_o call_v he_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n scholar_n austen_n may_v have_v be_v luther_n scholar_n fly_a throw_v the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n have_v the_o eternal_a gospel_n in_o his_o hand_n illiricus_fw-la in_fw-la apoc_fw-la cap._n 14._o schussinburge_n say_v that_o elyas_n and_o john_n baptist_n be_v but_o figure_n of_o luther_n professor_n elias_n &_o john_n baptist_n be_v figure_n of_o luther_n luther_n vituperation_n and_o dispraise_n of_o his_o own_o professor_n theol._n call_v lib._n 2._o fol._n 124._o in_o the_o end_n this_o extraordinary_a prophet_n be_v describe_v of_o his_o own_o for_o schulss_o lib._n 2._o art_n 12._o the_o theol._n call_v call_v he_o proud_a furious_a intolerable_a full_a of_o error_n impudent_a a_o forger_n and_o a_o depraver_n of_o god_n word_n deceitful_a a_o seducer_n a_o false_a prophet_n lunatyck_n presumptuous_a a_o crucifyer_n and_o a_o murderer_n of_o christ_n likewise_o zuing._n call_v he_o a_o drunken_a dreamer_n and_o a_o head_n full_a of_o lie_n moreover_o caluin_n will_v be_v number_v among_o these_o prophet_n call_v caluin_n will_v be_v account_v a_o prophet_n and_o extraordinary_o call_v as_o be_v observe_v in_o diverse_a of_o his_o sermon_n say_v i_o be_o a_o prophet_n i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n &_o be_o send_v of_o god_n i_o can_v err_v &_o if_o i_o err_v it_o be_v god_n that_o deceive_v i_o and_o put_v i_o in_o error_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n his_o miracle_n and_o lyf_v &_o his_o prophetical_a extraordinary_a vocation_n be_v rehearse_v of_o schlussinburge_n one_o of_o their_o own_o profession_n gospel_n his_o miracle_n and_o vocation_n be_v commend_v of_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n lib._n 2._o art_n 12._o fol._n 72._o the_o theol._n calu._n who_o say_v that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v mock_v by_o man_n have_v show_v his_o judgement_n in_o the_o world_n against_o caluin_n visyte_v he_o in_o the_o scourge_n of_o his_o fury_n punish_v he_o before_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n for_o he_o strike_v this_o sacramental_a heretyck_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o die_v desperate_a swear_v and_o invocate_a the_o devil_n to_o who_o he_o render_v his_o spirit_n which_o isue_v out_o of_o his_o privy_a member_n and_o out_o of_o his_o ulcerous_a soore_n and_o lay_v so_o stink_a that_o the_o people_n be_v notable_a to_o endure_v the_o stink_n and_o thus_o miserable_o end_v his_o lyf_v beside_o this_o he_o be_v infamous_a by_o sodomy_n apostle_n calu._n die_v desperate_a curse_v god_n and_o invocate_a the_o devil_n his_o bad_a life_n the_o catholycke_n have_v register_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o a_o memory_n all_o as_o s._n luc_n do_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n cruel_a bloody_a tyrannous_a deceytfull_a treacherous_a a_o babbler_n a_o contemner_n a_o sophist_n a_o epicure_n and_o a_o tosser_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o quid_fw-la in_o his_o metamorphosis_n thus_o he_o so_o that_o this_o way_n they_o have_v make_v their_o extraordinary_a vocation_n conformable_a to_o their_o extraordinary_a miracle_n but_o for_o the_o catholyck_a part_n all_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v account_v of_o miracle_n and_o have_v write_v the_o admirable_a lyve_n of_o the_o sancte_n and_o have_v they_o in_o regyster_n from_o christ_n time_n imitate_v s._n luc_n admirable_a and_o miraculous_a relation_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o david_n praise_v god_n in_o his_o saint_n as_o also_o to_o follow_v their_o devotion_n and_o holiness_n of_o because_o the_o prophet_n say_v ps_n 14._o he_o that_o glorisy_v they_o that_o fearour_n lord_n shall_v dwell_v in_o his_o tabernacle_n and_o rest_n in_o his_o holy_a hill_n for_o their_o miracle_n do_v on_o earth_n have_v make_v they_o glorious_a in_o heaven_n for_o caluin_n confess_v in_o heb_n 2.4_o &_o 2._o cor_fw-la v._o 12._o that_o miracle_n be_v seal_n of_o doctrine_n scotland_n calu._n be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o for_o now_o he_o say_v that_o miracle_n be_v seal_n of_o true_a doctrine_n the_o heretyk_n want_v miracle_n miracle_n the_o overthrow_n of_o idolatry_n myracl_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o scotland_n and_o do_v establish_v faith_n and_o scripture_n whereupon_o all_o the_o sectary_n have_v great_a cause_n to_o distrust_v their_o faith_n as_o a_o novelty_n unseal_v and_o unestablish_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v know_v altogether_o to_o want_v miracle_n as_o also_o good_a life_n far_o otherways_o be_v the_o conversion_n of_o scotland_n from_o idolatry_n to_o the_o catholycke_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o only_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n but_o also_o be_v in_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n as_o true_a faith_n reveal_v and_o approve_v from_o heaven_n with_o admirable_a holiness_n of_o life_n and_o modest_a conversation_n both_o in_o clergy_n and_o lay_v person_n that_o many_o age_n after_o death_n and_o solution_n of_o mortality_n we_o see_v and_o read_v the_o lyve_a lord_n honour_v and_o worship_v in_o they_o who_o body_n whilst_o they_o live_v be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
be_v out_o of_o a_o malignant_a spirit_n and_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o attribute_v the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n obiectio_fw-la in_o belzebub_n &_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o papist_n cast_v out_o devil_n &_o work_v miracle_n ergo_fw-la their_o miracle_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o of_o god_n answer_n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o if_o at_o the_o touch_v of_o the_o relycke_n of_o saint_n or_o in_o visit_v their_o sepultur_n chapell_n or_o to_o go_v pilgrimagie_n to_o their_o relyck_n and_o place_n or_o make_v prayer_n and_o invocation_n to_o they_o or_o application_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o honour_n and_o devotion_n towards_o they_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v and_o do_v in_o the_o catholycke_a church_n be_v to_o be_v attribute_v and_o ascrybed_n to_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o this_o proposition_n shall_v follow_v two_o great_a absurdity_n first_o that_o the_o devil_n with_o all_o power_n and_o force_n shall_v honour_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n which_o be_v most_o contrary_a by_o the_o absurdity_n for_o then_o the_o devil_n shall_v destroy_v himself_o and_o his_o kingdom_n in_o promote_a the_o worshipe_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n unto_o who_o he_o will_v give_v none_o nor_o acknowledge_v any_o due_a either_o to_o god_n or_o his_o saint_n second_o that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o saint_n shall_v serve_v for_o the_o work_n the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o divyne_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n shall_v serve_v to_o the_o obsequy_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o assertion_n by_o the_o absurdity_n be_v horrible_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n obiectio_fw-la when_o those_o and_o such_o lyck_a miracle_n fall_v out_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attribute_v and_o ascrybed_n to_o come_v of_o the_o saint_n or_o of_o their_o meryte_n or_o by_o their_o intercession_n or_o praeyer_n but_o because_o it_o fortune_v so_o answer_n it_o be_v a_o open_a blasphemy_n either_o to_o speak_v or_o think_v to_o strain_v the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o the_o course_n of_o the_o planet_n and_o to_o the_o hide_a influence_n of_o the_o heaven_n so_o that_o leo_n affirm_v epistol_n ad_fw-la astoricensem_fw-la who_o follow_v these_o there_o be_v no_o more_o place_n leave_v for_o he_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o say_v he_o who_o once_o have_v give_v themselves_o unto_o the_o constellation_n and_o persuade_v themselves_o after_o their_o own_o opinion_n depart_v and_o cut_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o this_o the_o counsel_n of_o braccar_n cap._n 1._o if_o any_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o man_n be_v astrict_v and_o govern_v of_o the_o fatal_a sign_n with_o the_o priscilianist_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v moreover_o miracle_n and_o prodigious_a thing_n oft_o fall_v out_o and_o be_v wrought_v when_o the_o relycke_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v of_o the_o people_n reverence_v and_o apply_v and_o when_o these_o saint_n be_v invocate_v by_o their_o earnest_a devotion_n and_o to_o bear_v witness_n of_o their_o reverence_n and_o honour_n to_o god_n saint_n they_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n even_o then_o especial_o miracle_n be_v do_v rather_o than_o any_o other_o time_n therefore_o see_v at_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n &_o the_o application_n of_o the_o relyke_n of_o the_o saint_n miracle_n be_v do_v they_o can_v be_v attribute_v to_o come_v of_o fortune_n or_o influence_n of_o the_o planet_n but_o of_o god_n the_o author_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o this_o world_n for_o if_o the_o fishe-poole_n probatica_fw-la in_o jerusalem_n have_v virtue_n give_v to_o it_o to_o cure_v disease_n at_o a_o certain_a season_n of_o the_o year_n by_o the_o descend_v of_o a_o angel_n move_v the_o water_n which_o virtue_n and_o work_v of_o miracle_n in_o the_o probatica_fw-la of_o jerusalem_fw-la can_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o planet_n neither_o to_o fortune_n but_o to_o god_n and_o mediate_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o angel_n even_o so_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o relyque_n of_o his_o saint_n or_o at_o their_o sepulture_n or_o altar_n can_v be_v attribute_v to_o fortune_n or_o any_o fatal_a star●e_n but_o to_o god_n and_o by_o the_o mediate_v ministry_n &_o intercession_n of_o his_o saint_n by_o who_o ministry_n god_n be_v honour_v qvaestio_n vii_o the_o pope_n be_v take_v of_o the_o reform_a for_o antichrist_n wherefore_o do_v the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a papist_n obey_v the_o pope_n in_o ma●ters_n of_o religion_n see_v he_o be_v but_o a_o man_n antique_o antichrist_n luther_n ass_n art_n 27._o smalchald_n de_fw-fr pot_n pa●ae_fw-la caluin_n in_o 2_o thes_n cap._n 2._o illir_n de_fw-fr primate_n papae_fw-la answer_n upon_o this_o proposition_n i_o demand_v and_o ask_v wherefore_o do_v your_o mynisteres_n of_o your_o church_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o whatsoever_o kingdom_n lay-man_n the_o protestant_n minyster_n be_v subject_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o lay-man_n or_o commonwealth_n they_o be_v in_o obey_v man_n and_o that_o lay-man_n of_o no_o ecclesiastical_a function_n neither_o of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v not_o this_o evident_a and_o know_v to_o all_o europe_n how_o the_o caluiniste_n of_o ingland_n give_v their_o homage_n &_o sure_a obedience_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n unto_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o institute_v her_o head_n of_o their_o reform_a synagogue_n lykwyse_o by_o her_o ordinance_n and_o statute_n we_o know_v and_o understand_v that_o these_o mynister_n be_v compel_v woman_n the_o minyster_n make_v queen_n elysabeth_n head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o swear_v obedience_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n contrary_a to_o their_o own_o conscience_n the_o scripture_n forbid_v woman_n in_o church_n matter_n the_o heretic_n wryte_n against_o the_o lawful_a temporal_a government_n of_o woman_n and_o bind_v to_o diverse_a ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n repugnant_a to_o their_o judgment_n and_o yet_o of_o necessity_n must_v rest_v content_v and_o also_o must_v subject_v themselves_o obedient_a to_o her_o statute_n what_o absurdity_n what_o baseness_n what_o indignity_n and_o what_o madness_n of_o mind_n to_o give_v to_o a_o woman_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n who_o the_o apostle_n 1._o timoth._n cap._n 2._o v._n n._n 12._o command_n to_o learn_v with_o silence_n with_o all_o subjection_n who_o be_v neither_o permit_v to_o teach_v neither_o to_o rule_v over_o a_o man_n how_o much_o more_o preposterous_a to_o rule_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o buchanan_n and_o knox_n write_v book_n against_o the_o regiment_n of_o a_o woman_n in_o which_o book_n they_o exclude_v his_o majesty_n mother_n of_o happy_a memory_n from_o the_o temporal_a government_n and_o as_o a_o thing_n most_o unworthy_a that_o a_o woman_n shall_v have_v any_o temporal_a government_n over_o man_n how_o much_o more_o indecent_a to_o rule_v over_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o heresy_n both_o in_o ingland_n and_o scotland_n so_o long_o as_o the_o two_o most_o catholyck_a maryes_fw-mi princess_n live_v the_o heretic_n oppose_v write_v against_o their_o government_n in_o temporal_a thing_n which_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n purpose_n heretic_n do_v allow_v the_o government_n of_o woman_n for_o their_o purpose_n and_o nature_n lawful_a for_o they_o notwithstanding_o when_v queen_n elizabeth_n obtain_v the_o crown_n than_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o she_o to_o rule_v not_o only_o in_o temporal_a thing_n but_o also_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v far_o less_o strange_a man_n it_o be_v not_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o reason_n to_o obey_v a_o man_n neither_o contrary_n to_o the_o tenor_n of_o reason_n neither_o too_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o a_o man_n then_o to_o a_o woman_n howbeit_o in_o lay-man_n this_o pre-eminence_n be_v never_o give_v of_o our_o lord_n neither_o be_v it_o ever_o permit_v to_o they_o to_o have_v the_o primacy_n of_o his_o church_n for_o if_o as_o the_o protestant_n say_n man_n christ_n never_o commit_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o his_o church_n to_o lay_v man_n why_o be_v the_o papist_n so_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a to_o obey_v a_o man_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n may_v it_o not_o be_v answer_v with_o the_o like_a humanity_n what_o be_v his_o majesty_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n a_o man_n or_o no_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o call_v he_o a_o prophet_n neither_o evangelist_n man_n the_o king_n of_o brittany_n be_v not_o a_o prophet_n nor_o a_o apostle_n nor_o a_o angel_n but_o a_o man_n neither_o patriarch_n nor_o angel_n yea_o a_o man_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o who_o all_o his_o good_a dutiful_a subject_n be_v
and_o compel_v man_n to_o idolatry_n and_o to_o worship_n himself_o and_o his_o image_n in_o all_o church_n and_o approve_a religion_n and_o where_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o thes_n 2._o that_o god_n shall_v send_v they_o not_o only_o the_o worker_n of_o error_n but_o the_o very_a fountain_n of_o error_n for_o as_o s._n ambros_n in_o luc_n c._n 21._o say_v that_o he_o shall_v dispute_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o his_o christ_n and_o he_o shall_v teach_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v god_n also_o he_o shall_v lead_v not_o only_a man_n to_o idolatrye_a bus_fw-la also_o shall_v persuade_v and_o compel_v all_o man_n to_o follow_v and_o obey_v he_o he_o shall_v also_o command_v himself_o to_o be_v worhhip_v and_o adore_v and_o his_o image_n to_o be_v place_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o jerusalem_n but_o in_o all_o other_o church_n also_o for_o antichrist_n know_v say_v the_o apostle_n abolish_v antichrist_n shall_v usurp_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o know_v christ_n shall_v come_v and_o beat_v he_o down_o he_o shall_v call_v himself_o god_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n because_o he_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n which_o antichrist_n shall_v abolish_v 2._o thess_n 2._o that_o our_o lord_n shall_v come_v to_o beat_v he_o down_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n will_v usurp_v his_o name_n unto_o himself_o to_o that_o end_n that_o his_o kingdom_n may_v seem_v true_a he_o will_v lead_v with_o he_o such_o as_o may_v perish_v together_o with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v sit_v in_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o seat_n of_o christ_n &_o affirm_v himself_o very_o god_n and_o therefore_o see_v antichrist_n be_v note_v proper_o to_o be_v a_o singular_a man_n and_o as_o yet_o not_o come_v who_o power_n &_o lyf_v be_v against_o christ_n that_o consequent_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v this_o antichrist_n who_o long_o since_o be_v come_v for_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v betwixt_o they_o may_v decern_v which_o of_o they_o be_v with_o or_o against_o god_n for_o this_o say_v antichrist_n shall_v oppose_v against_o christ_n and_o abolish_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o contrary_a w●●e_n the_o pope_n forbid_v no_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n neither_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n antichrist_n will_v do_v open_o against_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v call_v himself_o god_n but_o the_o pope_n do_v ne●er_o against_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n neither_o private_o nor_o public_o nor_o never_o do_v call_v himself_o god_n know_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o antichrist_n and_o by_o what_o note_n they_o may_v be_v know_v antichrist_n will_v not_o only_o be_v call_v god_n of_o o_o her_o man_n but_o will_v extol_v himself_o above_o god_n that_o be_v he_o will_v extol_v himself_o above_o the_o bless_a trinity_n but_o this_o extol_v no_o pope_n ever_o do_v think_v of_o much-lesseprof●sse_a it_o but_o profess_v and_o confess_v themselves_o to_o be_v servant_n of_o they_o who_o serve_v god_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n messiah_n antichrist_n thallbe_n receive_v of_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o messiah_n antichrist_n shall_v be_v receive_v special_o of_o the_o jew_n s._n hier._n ad_fw-la algas_n chrys_n hom_o 4_o in_o john_n but_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o receive_v the_o pope_n at_o any_o time_n and_o if_o they_o receive_v not_o christ_n far_o less_o the_o pope_n but_o shall_v receive_v antichrist_n as_o christ_n fortolde_v joh._n 5._o which_o place_n all_o the_o father_n expound_v of_o antichrist_n as_o ambros_n in_o 2._o thess_n 2._o cyril_n lib._n 3._o in_o john_n cap._n 6._o theod._n in_o 2._o thes_n 2._o antichrist_n shall_v come_v circumcise_v circumcision_n antichrist_n shall_v come_v circumcise_v of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o of_o the_o circumcision_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v have_v some_o confidence_n in_o believe_v he_o as_o s._n hier._n say_v sup_v he_o shall_v do_v all_o those_o thing_n not_o by_o his_o own_o power_n but_o by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n for_o the_o jew_n sake_n and_o theod._n ut_fw-la sup_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v look_v for_o he_o and_o when_o he_o come_v they_o will_v believe_v in_o he_o but_o to_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o the_o circumcision_n neither_o circumcise_v neither_o be_v he_o expect_v of_o the_o jew_n neither_o of_o they_o be_v believe_v ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v he_o antichrist_n moreover_o daniel_n cap._n 7._o after_o the_o description_n of_o the_o four_o empire_n it_o be_v say_v antichrist_n daniel_n prophesy_v of_o antichrist_n that_o the_o four_o beast_n which_o be_v the_o roman_a empire_n have_v ten_o horn_n and_o i_o consider_v the_o horn_n and_o behold_v a_o other_o littel_v horn_n spring_v out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n be_v pull_v up_o before_o his_o face_n and_o behold_v the_o eye_n as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o man_n be_v in_o his_o horn_n and_o a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n in_o which_o place_n s._n hier._n in_o dan_n cap._n 7._o let_v we_o say_v say_v he_o world_n before_o antichrist_n come_v ten_o king_n shall_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n and_o the_o eleven_o king_n shall_v humble_v three_o principal_a of_o the_o ten_o as_o a_o token_n of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n before_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n the_o euangelly_n must_v be_v preach_v through_o the_o world_n that_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n have_v lest_o by_o tradition_n that_o in_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n must_v be_v destroy_v there_o shall_v be_v ten_o king_n who_o will_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n among_o themselves_o and_o there_o shall_v arise_v the_o eleven_o be_v a_o very_a little_a king_n who_o shall_v overcome_v three_o of_o these_o ten_o king_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o king_n of_o egypt_n africa_n and_o ethiopia_n this_o witness_n hippol_n hom._n de_fw-la antichrist_n and_o theod._n 2._o thess_n 2._o but_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o conquer_v to_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o egypt_n africa_n &_o ethiopergo_v he_o be_v not_o antichrist_n moreover_o before_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n the_o euange_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o christ_n have_v say_v matt_n 24._o v._o 14._o this_o evange_o of_o the_o kingdom_n halbe_n preach_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o a_o testimony_n to_o all_o nation_n then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n but_o this_o liberty_n of_o the_o euange_o be_v not_o fulfil_v as_o yet_o as_o a_o certain_a sign_n of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n when_o he_o shall_v appear_v &_o see_v antichrist_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v as_o of_o this_o sign_n may_v be_v gather_v ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n preach_n before_o antichrist_n come_v henoch_n and_o elias_n must_v come_v &_o when_o they_o come_v they_o will_v withstand_v he_o in_o their_o preach_n moreover_o the_o preach_n of_o henoch_n and_o elias_n be_v not_o yet_o fulfil_v who_o by_o their_o preach_n shall_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o antichrist_n for_o confirm_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolical_a faith_n as_o witness_v s._n joh._n apoc._n 11._o i_o shall_v give_v my_o two_o witness_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundrith_n and_o sixty_o day_n clothe_v in_o sa●hcloth_n as_o witness_v this_o place_n in_o their_o commentary_n primus_fw-la bed_n richard_n aret._n in_o apoc._n damasc_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 18._o greg._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o d._n aug._n in_o gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr lib._n 9_o cap._n 6._o but_o elias_n and_o enoc●_n shall_v not_o come_v but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n and_o as_o yet_o antichrist_n be_v not_o come_v ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n hippol._n serm_n de_fw-fr antich_n &_o aug._n de_fw-fr civet_n lib._n 20._o cap._n 19_o chry._n in_o 2._o thes_n cap_n 2._o moreover_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v bear_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n as_o witness_v iren._n lib_n 5._o advers_a haeres_fw-la hippol_n serm_n de_fw-fr antichrist_n theod._n in_o 2_o thes_n 2_o greg._n mo●al_a lib_n 14_o in_o 106._o cap._n 11._o dan._n antichrist_n shall_v be_v bear_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan._n but_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o bear_v neither_o derive_v from_o such_o a_o tribe_n ergo_fw-la not_o antichrist_n morover_n antichrist_n come_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o foresaid_a author_n make_v mention_v but_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n the_o world_n shall_v have_v be_v finish_v long_o since_o ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n god_n the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a &_o he_o shall_v reign_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n moreover_o
that_o rock_n be_v the_o reward_n of_o the_o confession_n the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n for_o peter_n faith_n be_v the_o warrant_n of_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o strong_a confession_n primacy_n the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o warrant_n of_o perpetuity_n peter_n primacy_n the_o power_n to_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n be_v to_o make_v peter_n such_o a_o rock_n as_o shall_v stay_v up_o his_o church_n by_o teach_v and_o rule_v the_o faithful_a who_o voice_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o hear_v as_o chry._n in_o john_n hom_n 18._o cyril_n in_o joh._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o hill_n de_fw-fr trin._n l._n 6._o tertul._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la advers_a haeret._n hippol._n the_o consume_v mundi_fw-la origen_n hom_n 5._o in_o exod_n cyp_n l._n 1._o epist_n 3._o &_o l._n 4._o epist_n 9_o hil._n c._n 16._o in_o matth._n s._n amb._n 68_o s._n bas_n in_o conc_fw-fr de_fw-fr paenit_fw-la s._n high_a in_o 16._o matth._n epiph._n in_o anchoratu_fw-la theod._n in_o cant_v cant_fw-la damasc_n in_o josaphat_n &_o barlaam_n theoph._n in_o 22._o luc_n euthym._n in_o 26._o mat._n aug._n retract_v l._n 1._o c._n 21._o cont_n epist_n don._n prosp_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gentleman_n lib._n 2_o c._n 28._o s._n greg._n epist_n l._n 6._o epist_n 37._o in_o fine_a we_o have_v many_o reason_n why_o s._n peter_n above_o all_o other_o be_v this_o rock_n to_o wit_n the_o excellency_n of_o his_o faith_n in_o the_o excellency_n of_o peter_n confession_n and_o faith_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o be_v the_o rock_n in_o peter_n be_v unity_n and_o a_o everlasting_a preisthood_n the_o avoid_n of_o schism_n &_o a_o ecclesiastical_a iorisdict●on_n these_o be_v peter_n prerogative_n which_o declare_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v collect_v and_o confer_v of_o the_o scripture_n set_v in_o order_n as_o follow_v peter_n prerogative_n of_o primacy_n the_o key_n of_o heaven_n be_v promise_v to_o he_o christ_n compare_v peter_n with_o himself_o in_o pay_v tribute_n christ_n make_v choice_n o●_n peter_n but_o to_o preach_v in_o and_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o glory_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n build_v on_o he_o be_v a_o lone_a &_o the_o signify_v of_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o only_a everlasting_a shepherd_n and_o last_o for_o the_o eschw_n of_o schism_n and_o for_o receive_v of_o ecclsiasticall_a power_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n peter_n pass_v far_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n in_o so_o much_o that_o these_o his_o prerogative_n may_v be_v easy_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o as_o first_o he_o be_v only_o name_v first_o of_o all_o the_o twelve_o matt._n 10._o for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o have_v the_o promise_n to_o be_v call_v cephas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o rock_n and_o this_o promise_v be_v make_v before_o the_o twelve_o be_v choosen_v and_o be_v real_o name_v peter_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o choice_n joh._n 1._o for_o asmuch_o that_o although_o both_o s._n john_n baptist_n have_v confess_v christ_n godhead_n before_o and_o na●hanieli_fw-it have_v say_v thou_o be_v the_o soon_o of_o god_n thou_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n mar●_n 3._o joh._n 1._o yet_o only_a peter_n confession_n be_v make_v after_o be_v most_o heigh_o esteem_v and_o reward_v for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o be_v call_v peter_n and_o christ_n do_v say_v to_o he_o matt._n 16._o thou_o be_v peter_n &_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v namely_o promise_v to_o peter_n alone_o matt._n 16._o and_o for_o asmuch_o that_o the_o tribute_n of_o didragma_n be_v dew_n for_o the_o first_o beget_v of_o every_o famille_fw-fr num_fw-la 3._o loseph_n de_fw-fr antiq_fw-la lib._n 18._o cap._n 12._o yet_o christ_n pay_v both_o for_o himself_o &_o for_o peter_n also_o as_o be_v the_o underhead_n and_o first_o beget_v of_o his_o family_n the_o church_n chry._n in_o matt._n hom._n 59_o for_o asmuch_o as_o also_o christ_n although_o a_o other_o boat_n be_v a_o hand_n yet_o he_o teach_v the_o people_n out_o of_o peter_n boat_n luc._n 5._o to_o show_v that_o in_o peter_n chair_n his_o doctrine_n shall_v always_o be_v firm_o profess_v multitude_n christ_n pray_v for_o peter_n faith_n peter_n enter_v first_o into_o the_o sepulture_n of_o christ_n peter_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v nominate_v special_o peter_n walk_v on_o the_o sea_n as_o aprerogative_n to_o rule_v the_o world_n peter_n more_o than_o other_o love_v christ_n and_o be_v command_v to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n christ_n fortel_v peter_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v death_n on_o the_o cross_n for_o christ_n sake_n peter_n answer_v for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n give_v sentence_n on_o juda_n to_o depose_v he_o peter_n after_o receipt_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v the_o faith_n to_o the_o multitude_n amb._n in_o 5._o cap._n luc._n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v sure_a to_o be_v sift_v of_o satan_n yet_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n allone_n be_v pray_v for_o that_o he_o be_v once_o convert_v may_v strenghthen_v his_o brother_n luc._n 22._o leo_fw-la serm_n 2._o the_o nat_n pet._n &_o paul_n for_o so_o much_o as_o when_o the_o tiding_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n be_v send_v to_o his_o disciple_n peter_n be_v first_o that_o enter_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n luc._n 24._o for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o be_v not_o coprehend_v with_o the_o rest_n but_o be_v several_o name_v by_o himself_o whil_n the_o angel_n say_v teil_n his_o disciple_n and_o peter_n marc._n 16._o for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o other_o aposte_v sail_v in_o the_o sea_n in_o a_o boat_n yet_o peter_n alone_o walk_v in_o the_o sea_n without_o a_o boat_n as_o a_o token_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v as_o a_o sea_n and_o be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o turisdiction_n john_n 22._o bern._n the_o considerate_a lib._n 2._o for_o asmuch_o as_o some_o other_o apostle_n stand_v by_o peter_z alone_z be_v show_v to_o have_v love_v christ_n more_o than_o they_o joh._n 21._o and_o he_o alone_o be_v command_v to_o seed_n christ_n sheep_n and_o to_o rule_v his_o lamb_n aug._n ibid._n for_o asmuch_o as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n alone_o thou_o shall_v strech-forth_a thy_o hand_n and_o fo●_n owe_v thou_o i_o which_o way_n in_o follow_v be_v by_o suffer_v death_n on_o the_o cross_n prophesy_v by_o christ_n joh._n 21_o for_n asmuch_o as_o peter_n answer_v always_o for_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o they_o all_o john_n 6._o matth._n 16._o for_o asmuch_o as_o after_o christ_n ascension_n peter_n allone_n give_v sentence_n upon_o judas_n and_o pronunce_v he_o depose_v act._n 1._o and_o a_o other_o to_o be_v choosen_n in_o his_o place_n act._n 1._o chry_n in_o act_n apost_n hom_n 3._o for_o asmuch_o as_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o peter_n above_o all_o the_o test_n first_o of_o a●_n teach_v the_o faith_n and_o the_o multitude_n be_v convert_v say_v to_o peter_n and_o to_o none_o other_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v &c_n &c_n act_n 2_o magus_n peter_n exhorte_v the_o convert_v to_o penance_n and_o baptism_n peter_n wrought_v the_o 1._o miracle_n peter_z first_o public_o confess_v christ_n before_o the_o counsel_n peter_n know_v the_o secret_n of_o ananias_n and_o saphiras_n heart_n peter_n shadow_n wrought_v miracle_n peter_n excommunicate_v &_o enjoin_v penance_n to_o simon_n magus_n for_o asmuch_o as_o peter_n make_v answer_v for_o all_o that_o they_o shall_v repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v act._n 2._o for_o somuch_o as_o peter_n do_v the_o first_o miracle_n after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o first_o heal_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o lame_a because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n show_v mystical_o that_o he_o establish_v the_o foot_n of_o other_o act._n 3._o amb._n serm_n 68_o for_o so_o much_o as_o peter_n confess_v christ_n first_o not_o only_o before_o private_a man_n but_o also_o at_o the_o seat_n of_o judgement_n act._n 4._o for_o asmuch_o as_o peter_n perceave_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n some_o to_o do_v in_o simplicity_n and_o some_o in_o deceit_n he_o therefore_o extend_v his_o power_n on_o anania_n and_o saphira_n strike_v they_o dead_a with_o one_o word_n act._n 5._o &_o greg._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 24._o for_o asmuch_o as_o all_o the_o apostle_n do_v miracle_n yet_o peter_n be_v so_o famous_a above_o the_o rest_n that_o his_o shadow_n wrought_v miracle_n act._n 5._o for_o asmuch_o as_o peter_n excommunicate_v and_o enjoin_v penance_n to_o simon_n magus_n the_o first_o heretic_n act_n 8._o for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o first_o after_o christ_n ascension_n who_o rayt_v a_o dead_a person_n to_o life_n call_v tabytha_n act._n 9_o gentiles_n peter_n by_o vision_n be_v make_v to_o know_v of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentiles_n for_o
7._o brent_n in_o prolog_n count_v a_o sotum_fw-la cent._n madeb_n lib_n 4._o cap._n 7._o answer_n i_o say_v no_o counsel_n either_o particular_a or_o general_a or_o whatsoever_o prelate_n or_o byshope_n be_v assemble_v have_v any_o infallible_a authority_n to_o define_v themselves_o without_o the_o authority_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n err_v no_o counsel_n may_v of_o itself_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o head_n diverse_a counsel_n have_v err_v which_o we_o prove_v manifest_o with_o reason_n see_v suchlyke_o sometime_o without_o his_o authority_n have_v err_v as_o the_o counsel_n of_o ariminense_n in_o which_o counsel_n be_v six_o hundrith_n bishop_n with_o arius_n in_o which_o it_o be_v define_v by_o they_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d homoousion_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v as_o a_o unproper_a word_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n jesus_n in_o his_o godhead_n be_v not_o to_o behold_v consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n likewise_o the_o counsel_n of_o milan_n which_o confirm_v the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n neither_o this_o shall_v seem_v to_o any_o a_o marvel_n that_o two_o such_o great_a counsel_n be_v dispyse_v and_o reject_v because_o they_o be_v imperfect_a and_o lame_a without_o a_o head_n neither_o do_v such_o counsel_n represent_v the_o universal_a church_n but_o only_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n without_o a_o head_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o such_o like_a counsel_n member_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v to_o the_o head_n &_o not_o to_o the_o body_n not_o to_o no_o particular_a member_n that_o the_o infallible_a promise_n of_o god_n divyne_a assistance_n in_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v promise_v and_o effect_v but_o only_o to_o the_o head_n who_o by_o lawful_a ordination_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n immediate_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o body_n can_v define_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o head_n body_n in_o the_o head_n be_v the_o sensitive_a power_n to_o rule_v the_o body_n see_v in_o the_o head_n be_v the_o sensitive_a power_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o the_o body_n be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o head_n and_o not_o contrariwyse_o the_o body_n to_o rule_v the_o head_n moreover_o whatsoever_o counsel_n have_v join_v to_o it_o the_o authority_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o infallible_a authority_n whether_o it_o be_v general_a provincial_a counsel_n the_o counsel_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v a_o pattern_n to_o all_o other_o lawful_a counsel_n or_o national_a because_o the_o decree_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v call_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n who_o can_v err_v in_o which_o counsel_n it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v see_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o us._n act._n 15._o v._n 28._o for_o this_o cause_n all_o other_o counsel_v lawful_o assemble_v may_v say_v the_o same_o word_n represent_v the_o universal_a church_n because_o that_o counsel_n be_v the_o form_n and_o exemplar_n of_o all_o other_o counsel_n lawful_o gather_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o head_n as_o also_o because_o no_o less_o necessary_a be_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o these_o letter_n day_n than_o he_o be_v in_o those_o day_n but_o now_o more_o necessary_a because_o of_o the_o great_a break_n out_o of_o heresy_n apostle_n great_a reason_n be_v in_o these_o time_n to_o gather_v counsel_n than_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o shall_v deny_v our_o lord_n that_o have_v buy_v we_o bring_v on_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n not_o know_v what_o they_o profess_v and_o lyve_a lyk_fw-mi brute-beaste_n only_o seak_v their_o pleasure_n and_o liberty_n without_o contradiction_n of_o a_o superior_a power_n for_o which_o cause_v general_a counsel_n be_v use_v to_o be_v ordain_v that_o they_o may_v suppress_v and_o extinguish_v such_o new_a novelty_n and_o heretical_a opinion_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n by_o general_a counsel_n with_o the_o head_n as_o chief_a pastor_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v damn_v &_o accurse_v so_o that_o aswell_o by_o scripture_n as_o reason_n it_o conclude_v that_o whatsoever_o counsel_n be_v gather_v lawful_o and_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n infallible_a counsel_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a be_v infalible_a that_o in_o one_o word_n i_o shall_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n that_o ancient_a costume_z have_v be_v that_o whatsoever_o decreete_v of_o a_o synod_n be_v conclude_v be_v ever_o send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v confirm_v judgement_n counsel_n remit_v their_o decree_n and_o examination_n with_o the_o heretic_n book_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v censure_v by_o his_o judgement_n and_o approve_a so_o that_o s._n aug._n epist_n 90._o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o chartage_n wryt_v in_o these_o word_n to_o innocent_a bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v unto_o our_o most_o bless_a father_n and_o honourable_a brother_n holy_a innocent_a pope_n we_o aurelius_n mundinus_n rusticanus_fw-la fidentius_fw-la and_o the_o rest_n who_o be_v present_a in_o the_o counsel_n at_o carthage_n and_o after_o commemoration_n of_o those_o who_o be_v present_a and_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o counsel_n against_o pelagius_n they_o add_v these_o word_n follow_v lord_n and_o holy_a brother_n we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o intimate_v to_o thy_o charity_n what_o we_o have_v do_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n may_v be_v annex_v to_o the_o statute_n of_o our_o judgement_n and_o meaning_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o and_o the_o correction_n of_o the_o perversitie_n of_o some_o other_o as_o also_o the_o heretical_a book_n of_o pelagius_n and_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o catholyck_a father_n we_o have_v send_v unto_o thy_o holiness_n to_o be_v adjudge_v the_o same_o likewise_o ghost_n this_o infallibility_n be_v ascrybed_n to_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n aug._n do_v witness_n in_o his_o epist_n 92._o &_o 95._o for_o we_o do_v not_o ascrybe_n this_o infallibility_n to_o the_o byshope_n and_o father_n gather_v togeathe_v in_o the_o counsel_n for_o that_o they_o be_v many_o or_o learned_a man_n but_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o matth._n 18._o v._n 20._o &_o 28._o v._o 66._o which_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n we_o believe_v you_o not_o to_o have_v in_o your_o synod_n wherein_o like_o manner_n man_n be_v find_v nyce_n this_o holy_a ghost_n no_o heretyck_n be_v assist_v with_o where_o also_o be_v find_v man_n and_o no_o angel_n the_o protestant_a counsel_n be_v leave_v without_o determination_n and_o worse_a than_o they_o be_v good_a luther_n set_v at_o nought_o all_o counsel_n and_o condemn_v the_o canon_n of_o nyce_n and_o not_o angel_n neither_o prophet_n nor_o evangelist_n but_o very_a man_n with_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o dissension_n make_v matter_n indeterminate_v and_o without_o conclusion_n among_o you_o and_o moreover_o wherefore_o give_v your_o brother_n such_o obedience_n and_o be_v in_o subjection_n unto_o your_o pseudo_fw-la bishop_n as_o to_o a_o spiritual_a and_o high_a power_n and_o accept_v of_o their_o decree_n see_v they_o be_v like_o our_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o name_n mortal_a man_n who_o lyve_n be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n therefore_o we_o have_v attribute_v infallibility_n of_o the_o counsel_n to_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o not_o to_o man_n which_o if_o luther_n in_o his_o book_n of_o counsel_n will_v have_v behoulden_a with_o a_o pure_a eye_n will_v not_o have_v break_v out_o in_o that_o bitterness_n to_o accurse_v and_o blaspheme_v the_o counsel_n &_o with_o which_o he_o set_v at_o nought_o the_o canon_n of_o that_o holy_a counsel_n of_o nyce_n which_o in_o all_o former_a time_n have_v be_v esteem_v so_o venerable_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n term_v all_o the_o article_n of_o this_o counsel_n to_o be_v but_o hay_n stubble_n and_o straw_n spirit_n kemnitius_n will_v examine_v the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n after_o his_o spirit_n to_o augment_v this_o do_v not_o kemnitius_n a_o lutheran_n a_o profane_a temerous_a fellow_n write_v the_o examen_fw-la of_o the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n in_o which_o be_v so_o many_o learned_a man_n and_o all_o be_v try_v and_o examine_v of_o he_o in_o which_o do_v they_o not_o only_o violate_v and_o transgress_v the_o divyne_a law_n of_o god_n which_o law_n command_v all_o man_n to_o seek_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o priest_n man_n heretic_n transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o imperial_a ordinance_n of_o man_n as_o mal._n 2._o but_o also_o the_o humane_a law_n of_o martian_a the_o emperor_n which_o command_v
and_o so_o all_o thing_n hard_a and_o ponder_v great_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o witness_n di●fers_v great_o he_o give_v sentence_n therefore_o see_v a_o heretic_n and_o catholic_a both_o say_v that_o they_o have_v search_v the_o scripture_n &_o these_o scripture_n bear_v testimony_n of_o their_o doctrine_n so_o that_o in_o this_o debate_n the_o search_a of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a way_n see_v these_o scripture_n be_v interpret_v of_o every_o one_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o judge_n who_o may_v give_v sentence_n of_o the_o true_a interpretation_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o this_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n be_v due_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o counsel_n and_o not_o to_o the_o search_n of_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v the_o ambition_n and_o pride_n of_o all_o heresy_n who_o set_v at_o nought_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o they_o will_v credit_v themselves_o &_o their_o own_o proper_a judgement_n other_o heretic_n will_v credit_v themselves_o and_o no_o other_o and_o that_o all_o man_n from_o the_o primitive_a time_n have_v err_v and_o they_o only_o have_v not_o err_v let_v scripture_n father_n counsel_n universality_n and_o practice_n do_v all_o what_o be_v right_a they_o will_v believe_v themselves_o and_o remain_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n as_o though_o they_o be_v god_n &_o not_o man_n and_o neither_o subject_n to_o sin_n nor_o error_n objection_n the_o general_n counsel_n do_v represente_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o defyne_v martin_n 5._o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n which_o counsel_n represent_v the_o person_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o church_n can_v no_o way_n be_v gather_v together_o but_o so_o far_o as_o the_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o one_o place_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n can_v err_v ergo_fw-la neither_o the_o general_n counsel_n which_o be_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n answer_n seclude_v the_o pope_n as_o head_n the_o counsel_n be_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neither_o do_v it_o represent_v perfect_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o it_o may_v err_v because_o they_o be_v particular_a counsel_n as_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o areminense_n as_o caiet_fw-mi tractat._n de_fw-fr auth._n &_o council_n cap._n 9_o objection_n if_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o counsel_n depend_v on_o the_o pope_n in_o vain_a it_o seem_v to_o call_v a_o counsel_n for_o true_o alswell_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o without_o a_o counsel_n the_o matter_n may_v be_v defyne_v as_o wish_v the_o counsel_n answer_n not_o so_o neither_o be_v counsel_v institute_v in_o vain_a for_o how_o much_o more_o inquisition_n be_v make_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o verity_n and_o be_v decern_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o many_o the_o verity_n be_v make_v the_o clear_a and_o error_n be_v take_v away_o because_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n define_v with_o the_o counsel_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n than_o those_o which_o he_o defyne_n of_o himself_o that_o the_o very_a heretic_n may_v persuade_v himself_o that_o it_o be_v true_a &_o solyde_v which_o by_o so_o great_a labour_n and_o exquisite_a diligence_n be_v find_v out_o and_o with_o so_o many_o consente_n be_v defyne_v for_o verity_n wherefore_o the_o pope_n do_v wysly_a in_o censure_v of_o heresy_n and_o other_o weighty_a cause_n to_o convocate_v counsel_n and_o to_o define_v the_o same_o with_o they_o in_o which_o definition_n of_o counsel_n although_o the_o bishop_n be_v judge_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v inferior_a judge_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v supreme_a judge_n and_o as_o a_o king_n in_o the_o kingdom_n may_v recall_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o inferior_a judge_n when_o the_o great_a part_n be_v leave_v out_o even_o so_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n may_v approve_v and_o reject_v with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o when_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n condiscende_v and_o defyne_n thereupon_o with_o he_o objection_n in_o many_o counsel_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v absent_a and_o only_o his_o legate_n be_v present_a ergo_fw-la they_o may_v err_v very_o much_o answer_n i_o grant_v such_o counsel_n may_v err_v except_o those_o legate_n have_v instruction_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o do_v follow_v the_o same_o and_o that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v conformable_a to_o his_o instruction_n in_o so_o do_v the_o counsel_n agree_v with_o the_o head_n in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o such_o a_o counsel_n be_v adjudge_v lawful_a when_o the_o pope_n before_o have_v give_v they_o instruction_n and_o have_v pronunce_v his_o judgement_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v but_o if_o the_o pope_n send_v no_o instruction_n by_o his_o legate_n albeit_o his_o legate_n do_v consent_n unto_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o counsel_n it_o be_v of_o no_o effect_n neither_o be_v that_o definition_n infallible_a because_o the_o authority_n to_o define_v and_o conclude_v be_v not_o in_o the_o legate_n who_o be_v but_o only_a messenger_n betwixt_o the_o counsel_n and_o the_o pope_n but_o for_o conclusion_n all_o conuselle_n before_o they_o conclude_v any_o thing_n after_o long_a deliberation_n and_o inquisition_n in_o every_o matter_n with_o their_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n they_o use_v to_o seek_v confirmation_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o we_o read_v of_o the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o bull_n of_o pius_n 4._o by_o which_o confirmation_n both_o the_o counsel_n be_v approve_v lawful_a and_o all_o thing_n be_v confirm_v and_o ratify_v and_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o all_o catholic_n counsel_n that_o for_o many_o no_o heresy_n dare_v show_v one_o to_o be_v a_o universal_a counsel_n for_o they_o although_o they_o have_v for_o protector_n of_o their_o heresy_n most_o puissant_a and_o potent_a emperor_n and_o king_n as_o valence_n and_o constance_n arian_n emperor_n the_o vandal_n and_o goth_n as_o also_o all_o sectary_n have_v attempt_v but_o as_o yet_o never_o can_v assemble_v a_o general_a counsel_n qvestio_n xii_o of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman-church_n and_o of_o her_o note_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n promise_v to_o all_o man_n salvation_n to_o be_v only_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n conf._n aug._n art_n 6._o calu._n lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 1._o §_o 10._o brent_n in_o conf_n wittemb_n cap._n de_fw-fr eccl._n answer_n because_o it_o stand_v with_o reason_n for_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v certain_a mark_n of_o credible_a evidence_n that_o only_o that_o multitude_n of_o man_n who_o obey_v at_o the_o present_a time_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n mark_n the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v by_o her_o mark_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n which_o we_o prove_v after_o this_o manner_n see_v that_o congregation_n of_o man_n be_v only_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v videlicet_fw-la one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolical_a church_n so_o that_o all_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n be_v decern_v by_o those_o token_n from_o other_o sect_n and_o not_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o pure_a word_n neither_o by_o the_o pure_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n invisible_a the_o heretic_n mark_n be_v as_o obscure_v as_o their_o church_n which_o be_v invisible_a the_o which_o the_o heretic_n assign_v for_o note_n of_o their_o church_n alike_o obscure_a with_o their_o church_n for_o what_o be_v he_o of_o the_o five_o euamgelist_n profession_n who_o prove_v not_o by_o those_o mark_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v with_o he_o and_o with_o no_o other_o because_o say_v he_o only_o in_o his_o congregation_n be_v the_o true_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n and_o sincere_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o mark_n ought_v to_o be_v evident_a otherwise_o they_o be_v no_o mark_n but_o the_o congregation_n that_o obey_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v those_o evident_a mark_n which_o be_v one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolical_a church_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o only_o in_o she_o be_v expect_v salvation_n for_o first_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v one_o partly_o in_o the_o head_n respect_n the_o church_n be_v one_o for_o diverse_a respect_n in_o so_o far_o that_o all_o bishop_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o head_n to_o who_o they_o agree_v and_o accord_v in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n partly_o in_o divyne_a worship_n for_o withal_o catholic_n be_v offer_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n with_o the_o same_o administration_n of_o ceremony_n and_o partly_o among_o the_o member_n themselves_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o believe_v one_o thing_n and_o condemn_v heresy_n in_o this_o one_o church_n unity_n be_v keep_v keep_v in_o one_o church_n unity_n be_v keep_v and_o teach_v as_o witness_v
the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o i_o beseech_v you_o brother_n by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o you_o say_v all_o one_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n among_o you_o but_o be_v you_o perfect_a in_o one_o sense_n and_o in_o the_o same_o knowledge_n again_o 1._o cor._n 14._o god_n be_v not_o a_o god_n of_o dissension_n but_o of_o peace_n again_o rome_n 15._o now_o the_o god_n of_o patience_n and_o consolation_n give_v you_o to_o think_v the_o same_o thing_n one_o with_o another_o according_a to_o jesus_n christ_n that_o with_o one_o mind_n and_o one_o mouth_n you_o may_v honour_v god_n again_o rom._n 12._o be_v not_o high_o mind_v and_o be_v not_o wise_a in_o yourselves_o again_o phil._n 2._o if_o there_o be_v any_o consolation_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o comfort_n of_o love_n if_o any_o fellowship_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o any_o compassion_n and_o mercy_n fulfil_v my_o joy_n that_o you_o be_v like_o mind_a have_v the_o same_o love_n &_o be_v of_o one_o unity_n and_o of_o one_o judgement_n therefore_o to_o descrybe_n this_o one_o with_o her_o unity_n she_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o spouse_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n his_o only_a dove_n and_o perfect_a one_o his_o elect_a and_o sister_n new_a jerusalem_n the_o arck_n of_o noe._n as_o witness_v these_o follow_v eph._n 4._o &_o 5.1_o cor._n 11._o rom._n 12._o cant._n 6_o &_o 4._o apoc._n 21._o gen._n 8._o psalm_n 79._o cant_n 2._o esa_n 5._o jer._n 2_o &_o 12._o matth._n 20._o marc._n 12._o apoc._n 14._o luc._n 5._o matth._n 13._o therefore_o as_o the_o church_n be_v one_o so_o have_v she_o unity_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o first_o she_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n truth_n the_o cause_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n ●s_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n a_o visible_a head_n to_o f●llow_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o ●he_n church_n for_o conserve_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o god_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n and_o always_o teach_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v but_o one._n second_o the_o high_a pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o under_o christ_n govern_v this_o church_n in_o a_o visible_a manner_n be_v a_o other_o cause_n because_o while_o all_o obey_v one_o who_o can_v swerve_v from_o the_o truth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o who_o christ_n have_v pray_v matth._n 16_o luc_n 22._o for_o faith_n and_o truth_n must_v agree_v in_o one_o because_o faith_n &_o truth_n be_v but_o one_o three_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o square_a rule_n by_o which_o the_o truth_n and_o religion_n be_v try_v and_o scripture_n be_v expound_v which_o rule_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o unity_n love_n &_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n no_o such_o like_a thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o protestants_n where_o be_v this_o one_o church_n among_o they_o where_o be_v unity_n which_o be_v a_o virtue_n proceed_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o teach_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o unity_n where_o be_v the_o head_n unto_o who_o all_o concurre_v where_o be_v the_o definition_n for_o the_o keep_n of_o unity_n be_v these_o effect_n among_o the_o sectary_n moreover_o in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n number_n of_o sacrament_n exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o use_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n such_o jar_n emulation_n and_o discord_n be_v among_o themselves_o that_o nicol._n gall_n superintendent_n in_o rhensburgein_o thesibus_fw-la &_o hypoth_v say_v our_o contention_n be_v not_o in_o small_a matter_n neither_o of_o trifle_n irreconciliable_a how_o variable_a be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o irreconciliable_a but_o in_o the_o high_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o justification_n and_o good_a work_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o use_v of_o they_o of_o divyne_a worshipe_n and_o ceremony_n which_o by_o no_o mean_n can_v be_v appease_v hide_v or_o dissemble_v for_o they_o be_v plain_a contradiction_n which_o can_v not_o be_v accord_v thus_o he_o so_o that_o by_o their_o own_o professor_n they_o be_v convince_v of_o discord_n and_o sect_n likewise_o sturnius_fw-la de_fw-la rat_n contrad_a inaeundae_fw-la pag._n 24._o do_v verisie_n this_o dissension_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o lutheran_n in_o their_o book_n publish_v do_v condemn_v the_o church_n of_o ingland_n france_n scotland_n szuitzerland_n as_o heretic_n likewise_o in_o his_o epitome_n colloq_fw-la malbrug_n a_o 1564._o pag._n 82._o discover_v the_o zwinglians_n who_o claim_n unity_n and_o fraternal_a peace_n with_o the_o lutheran_n say_v that_o the_o zwinglians_n write_v that_o they_o account_v themselves_o brother_n with_o we_o it_o be_v a_o impudent_a lie_n and_o vain_o forge_v by_o they_o that_o we_o can_v sufficient_o admire_v their_o impudence_n for_o we_o account_v they_o heretic_n &_o not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n farrelesse_a to_o repute_v they_o our_o brother_n who_o we_o find_v transport_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o falsehood_n and_o to_o be_v contumelious_a to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n again_o schluss_n in_o theol._n cal._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o say_v that_o the_o caluiniste_n will_v account_v we_o lutheran_n as_o their_o brother_n who_o notwithstanding_o they_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n this_o discord_n jezler_n zuinglio_n caluinist_n lib._n de_fw-fr diuturnit_fw-la bell●_n euch_fw-ge pag._n 25._o &_o 80._o discovere_n more_o at_o length_n say_v there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o chide_v write_v accuse_v dispute_v condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v one_o another_o betwixt_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluiniste_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n say_v schluss_n lib._n 2._o art_n 15._o theol._n call_v that_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a no_o definition_n either_o of_o general_a or_o particular_a counsel_n be_v expect_v for_o unity_n in_o religion_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o they_o to_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n except_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n hasten_v and_o close_o up_o this_o variance_n likewise_o carlil_n in_o his_o book_n how_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n affirm_v their_o unity_n be_v to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n from_o their_o right_a sense_n and_o to_o show_v themselves_o to_o love_v darkness_n more_o than_o the_o light_n whereupon_o cal._n in_o praf_n non_fw-la test_n gall_n 1567._o i_o confess_v say_v he_o that_o satan_n have_v gain_v more_o by_o these_o new_a gospeler_n than_o be_v in_o popery_n by_o keep_v the_o word_n from_o the_o people_n be_v not_o this_o the_o unity_n of_o these_o professor_n of_o disco●d_n schism_n and_o variable_a opinion_n as_o greg._n maior_fw-la in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr conf_fw-fr dogm_n the_o papist_n say_v he_o do_v object_n the_o scandal_n and_o discord_n which_o be_v among_o we_o i_o confess_v they_o be_v great_a then_o can_v be_v deplore_v with_o any_o tear_n i_o confess_v the_o weak_a mind_n of_o many_o to_o be_v so_o trouble_v thereby_o that_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o doubt_v where_o the_o truth_n be_v or_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n of_o god_n or_o no._n likewise_o chytreus_n in_o thema_fw-la deprau_v aug._n conf_n the_o evangelicall_a doctor_n be_v more_o barbarous_a and_o lyk_fw-mi cruel_a beast_n contend_v among_o themselves_o then_o barbarous_a soldier_n likewise_o nil_fw-la selueccerus_n say_v that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v loathsome_a to_o the_o world_n their_o chayr_n pulpite_n and_o seat_n begin_v to_o displease_v all_o man_n in_o which_o no_o other_o doctrine_n be_v hear_v then_o venomous_a debate_n contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n for_o as_o say_v vigand_n lib._n the_o errorib_n maior_fw-la it_o be_v neither_o will_v nor_o flax_n that_o they_o contend_v about_o but_o the_o very_a capital_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n &_o until_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o shall_v never_o better_a agree_v therefore_o for_o conclusion_n no_o unity_n in_o heresy_n but_o this_o unity_n be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v of_o one_o hart_n reason_n in_o conclusion_n no_o unity_n be_v in_o heresy_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o so_o be_v unity_n and_o love_n in_o she_o one_o be_v the_o church_n and_o in_o unity_n for_o diverse_a reason_n and_o one_o mind_n therefore_o our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v that_o one_o and_o keep_v unity_n &_o that_o same_o with_o the_o church_n which_o be_v from_o the_o primitive_a time_n which_o may_v easy_o appear_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o all_o former_a antiquity_n which_o also_o remain_v one_o and_o in_o keep_v unity_n in_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o the_o self_n visible_a head_n not_o in_o number_n but_o by_o successive_a succession_n and_o moreover_o it_o be_v
answer_n i_o confess_v we_o be_v call_v so_o of_o only_a heretic_n but_o not_o so_o of_o any_o nation_n under_o heaven_n no_o not_o of_o the_o turk_n neither_o be_v that_o name_n of_o any_o particular_a man_n as_o heretic_n name_n be_v but_o ●f_o ●im_a who_o in_o the_o place_n of_o chr●st_n govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n be_v number_v to_o th●s_n present_a day_n all_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o able_a to_o find_v one_o that_o be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n pope_n or_o any_o of_o they_o to_o have_v invent_v any_o new_a religion_n or_o to_o have_v leave_v any_o disciple_n after_o they_o who_o have_v be_v name_v after_o that_o name_n therefore_o when_o we_o be_v call_v papist_n i_o ask_v of_o the_o heretic_n be_v there_o ever_o any_o that_o be_v call_v papa_n by_o his_o proper_a name_n or_o do_v ever_o any_o heresy_n contin●e_v a_o thousand_o year_n without_o a_o name_n give_v to_o it_o but_o how_o shall_v the_o church_n descrybe_n heresy_n to_o we_o but_o by_o name_v they_o from_o their_o proper_a name_n for_o their_o name_n show_v who_o have_v institute_v and_o invent_v that_o sect_n objection_n the_o church_n be_v believe_v by_o faith_n but_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o see_v because_o say_v be_v not_o a_o thing_n of_o appearance_n and_o see_v answer_n the_o conclusion_n be_v false_a because_o that_o which_o be_v see_v may_v also_o be_v believe_v in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o have_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v as_o christ_n jesus_n be_v see_v wi●h_a man_n eye_n a_o man_n and_o be_v believe_v by_o fa●th_n god_n and_o man_n as_o be_v say_v 10.20_o to_o s_n thomas_n because_o thou_o have_v see_v i_o thomas_n thou_o have_v belive_v that_o be_v to_o say_v thou_o have_v see_v a_o man_n and_o thou_o have_v believe_v he_o to_o be_v thy_o god_n and_o lord_n even_o so_o we_o see_v man_n with_o our_o eye_n who_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n and_o those_o man_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o holy_a apostolic_a and_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o this_o church_n to_o be_v only_a remission_n of_o sin_n grace_n justification_n eternal_a life_n and_o therefore_o out_o of_o this_o multitude_n of_o mortal_a man_n neither_o salvation_n nor_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v of_o any_o other_o society_n or_o church_n objection_n christ_n say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o come_v with_o observation_n neither_o shall_v they_o say_v behold_v here_o or_o there_o ●e_n be_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n can_v be_v demonstrate_v and_o see_v answer_n the_o solution_n be_v make_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v for_o he_o say_v behold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v with_o you_o but_o christ_n deny_v not_o but_o the_o kingdom_n his_o church_n may_v be_v see_v and_o demonstrate_v but_o he_o answer_v the_o foolish_a question_n of_o the_o pharisee_n who_o have_v hear_v so_o oft_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n preach_v of_o christ_n who_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v it_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o reign_v in_o this_o world_n after_o their_o mind_n as_o other_o king_n do_v with_o magnificence_n and_o pomp_n and_o to_o place_v the_o throne_n of_o majesty_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o he_o say_v he_o dorh_fw-mi reign_n as_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n which_o be_v his_o kingdom_n who_o he_o do_v paint_v out_o with_o his_o finger_n say_v mat._n 5._o bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n you_o be_v citizen_n of_o god_n kingdom_n the_o church_n from_o which_o the_o pharisy_n be_v far_o of_o objection_n the_o church_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v holy_a and_o none_o except_o the_o holy_a appertayn_a to_o the_o church_n but_o holiness_n be_v not_o see_v &_o know_v with_o the_o eye_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n be_v invisible_a &_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unknown_a answer_n the_o conclusion_n be_v false_a for_o there_o be_v saint_n and_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o church_n albeit_o we_o see_v they_o not_o yet_o we_o believe_v for_o to_o a_o lyve_a tree_n there_o adhere_v many_o dead_a branch_n and_o in_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v many_o humour_n and_o excrement_n without_o life_n resident_a in_o the_o body_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o man_n believe_v and_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v a_o lyve_a man_n ergo_fw-la objection_n it_o be_v defend_v of_o the_o father_n that_o the_o church_n in_o this_o present_a life_n be_v say_v to_o be_v beautiful_a and_o to_o be_v without_o spot_n cant_fw-la 4_o ergo_fw-la sinner_n and_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o member_n of_o his_o church_n answer_n the_o scripture_n in_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n in_o heaven_n notwithstanding_o if_o with_o s._n greg._n cap._n 86_o eccl._n dogmat_fw-la thou_o compadre_v it_o to_o be_v the_o militant_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n it_o be_v call_v also_o beautiful_a and_o spotless_a because_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n which_o make_v her_o member_n lively_a by_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o grace_n &_o be_v make_v glorious_a before_o god_n and_o be_v not_o obscure_v and_o hide_v as_o the_o donatist_n think_v with_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o albeit_o as_o s._n greg._n cap._n 4._o gen._n say_v no_o just_a or_o holy_a man_n do_v want_v sin_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o fail_v not_o to_o be_v holy_a and_o just_a if_o in_o affection_n he_o retayn_a holiness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o by_o penance_n do_v wash_v away_o his_o sin_n careful_a to_o keep_v himself_o from_o mortal_a sin_n and_o be_v contrite_a for_o the_o venyall_n say_v with_o the_o psalm_n 50._o create_v in_o i_o a_o new_a hart_n o_o god_n objection_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v only_o in_o the_o spirit_n because_o it_o be_v believe_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v invisible_a answer_n if_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a how_o have_v christ_n command_v matth._n 18._o to_o tell_v the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v etc._n etc._n but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a how_o shall_v she_o be_v tell_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v her_o censure_n likewise_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o christian_n member_n rom._n 12._o 1._o cor._n 1._o &_o 12._o ephes_n 15_o coll._n 1._o if_o the_o chutch_n be_v invisible_a and_o only_o mathematical_a how_o have_v the_o apostle_n say_v you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n of_o his_o member_n it_o be_v true_a the_o protestant_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o mathematical_a but_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n as_o a_o candle_n on_o a_o candelstick_n and_o as_o the_o son_n and_o moon_n in_o the_o firmament_n luc._n 11._o ps_n 19_o for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v mathematical_a and_o hide_v s._n paul_n shall_v not_o have_v have_v the_o praise_n of_o all_o the_o church_n 2._o cor._n 8._o neither_o david_n will_v not_o have_v say_v ps_n 21._o with_o thou_o my_o praise_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o people_n and_o in_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o elder_a they_o do_v praise_v he_o what_o the_o modern_a heresy_n do_v say_v about_o the_o invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o have_v the_o former_a heresy_n do_v likewise_o as_o s._n augustin_n be_v witness_n against_o the_o donatist_n who_o will_v have_v include_v the_o universal_a church_n in_o that_o invisibility_n and_o in_o a_o hide_a corner_n in_o africa_n qvestio_n xiii_o of_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o the_o protestant_n wherefore_o enuyous_o name_v the_o papist_n our_o reform_a church_n deform_v see_v we_o have_v reject_v all_o papistical_a doctrine_n and_o superstition_n of_o popery_n out_o of_o it_o bucherus_n melan._n piscator_fw-la sarcer_fw-la caluin_n etc._n etc._n answer_n that_o shall_v we_o declare_v friendly_a without_o envy_n see_v that_o under_o the_o pretext_n of_o a_o sound_n reformation_n faith_n the_o protestant_n reformation_n consist_v in_o deny_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n you_o have_v introduce_v a_o most_o horrible_a deformation_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o abolish_n all_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n in_o reject_v the_o general_a counsel_n in_o condemn_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n in_o dispyse_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o in_o give_v liberty_n to_o the_o flesh_n for_o what_o be_v more_o deform_a or_o abominable_a in_o religion_n then_o to_o counfound_v deform_v and_o deny_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n for_o what_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o deform_v and_o deny_v of_o the_o protestant_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o judgement_n and_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o rabbi_n definition_n against_o the_o 1._o article_n of_o the_o
the_o most_o sacred_a and_o true_a gospel_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o doctrine_n i_o will_v judge_v all_o man_n &_o angel_n likewise_o luth._o tom._n 2._o &_o tom._n 5._o ad_fw-la gall._n cap._n 1._o fol._n 290._o say_v the_o same_o i_o be_o assure_v christ_n himself_o do_v call_v i_o a_o evangelist_n and_o approve_v i_o his_o preacher_n lykwyse_o calu._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la eccl._n reformat_fw-la rat_n 463._o &_o de_fw-la libro_fw-la arb_n count_v phigium_fw-la lib._n 1._o pag._n 192._o say_v that_o the_o matter_n itself_o not_o martin_n luther_n in_o the_o begiun_n do_v speak_v but_o god_n to_o have_v thunder_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n and_o not_o we_o to_o speak_v now_o but_o god_n to_o utter_v his_o power_n albeit_o each_o one_o of_o these_o be_v repugnant_a to_o other_o yet_o be_v secure_a of_o their_o own_o opinion_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n moreover_o they_o impugn_v this_o article_n who_o derogate_a from_o holy_a scripture_n the_o authority_n due_a thereto_o by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o which_o zuing._n tom_fw-mi 2._o elench_v count_v anabap._n fol._n 10._o say_n that_o although_o paul_n do_v arrogate_v so_o much_o to_o his_o epistl_n as_o to_o think_v all_o in_o they_o contain_v to_o be_v authentical_a which_o be_v to_o impute_v to_o the_o apostl_v immoderate_a arrogancy_n whereupon_o it_o conclude_v zuingl_n to_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no●_n s._n paul_n but_o ochinus_n lib._n 2._o dial_n pag._n 154.155.156.157_o proceed_v further_a say_n we_o shall_v believe_v no_o more_o they_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n hereby_o we_o see_v the_o whole_a new_a testament_n be_v discredit_v and_o misbelieve_v some_o other_o heretic_n be_v more_o courteous_a in_o abridge_n and_o exclude_v some_o part_n of_o it_o but_o not_o all_o and_o what_o ochinus_n allow_v luther_n disprove_v say_v sermone_fw-la de_fw-fr moyse_n let_v not_o moses_n be_v thrust_v upon_o we_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n will_v neither_o regard_v nor_o hear_v he_o et_fw-la jacob_n curio_n in_o chronol_n ann_n 1556._o pag._n 151._o say_v that_o he_o have_v rather_o never_o preach_v then_o to_o propound_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o moses_n and_o he_o that_o do_v allege_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o do_v deprive_v christ_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o that_o moses_n belong_v not_o to_o we_o that_o he_o receave_v he_o not_o for_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v receive_v all_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n that_o his_o government_n be_v faill_v &_o himself_o be_v dead_a that_o moses_n only_o belong_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o not_o to_o christian_n et_fw-fr sand._n de_fw-fr schism_n aug._n lib_n 2._o pag_n 272._o report_v buccerus_n to_o say_v if_o all_o be_v true_a which_o the_o evangelist_n set_v down_o christ_n must_v be_v true_o and_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o whether_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v absolute_o every_o thing_n set_v down_o by_o they_o to_o be_v true_a or_o no_o he_o will_v not_o be_v judge_n to_o conclude_v this_o be_v their_o design_n what_o they_o listen_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o will_v believe_v &_o that_o they_o make_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v holy_a scripture_n and_o themselves_o evangelist_n and_o true_a and_o what_o displease_v their_o mind_n be_v it_o in_o the_o new_a or_o old_a testament_n they_o can_v raze_v reject_v &_o affirm_v it_o apochriphal_a neither_o in_o this_o be_v they_o satisfy_v but_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o can_v suggest_v or_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o christ_n before_o have_v delyver_v by_o mouth_n and_o such_o restraint_n &_o limitation_n to_o be_v heedful_o note_v this_o caluin_n lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 8._o §_o 8_o howsoever_o christ_n foretell_v the_o contrary_a of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n morover_n what_o be_v say_v of_o impugn_v of_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o misbelief_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o that_o there_o be_v few_o protestant_n who_o have_v not_o deny_v some_o part_n of_o scripture_n moreover_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v misbelieve_v and_o impugn_a when_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v deny_v although_o they_o be_v not_o all_o extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o name_n trinity_n the_o consubstantiality_n of_o person_n the_o observation_n of_o sunday_n for_o the_o sabbath_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o communion_n fast_v and_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n etc._n etc._n which_o tradition_n the_o holy_a church_n acknowledge_v to_o have_v issue_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o christ_n his_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o teach_v but_o also_o suggest_v all_o truth_n moreover_o the_o protestant_n impugn_v the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o they_o impugn_v miracle_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o the_o devil_n s_o aug._n in_o quaest_n ex_fw-la utroque_fw-la test_n quaest_a 102._o prove_v that_o they_o sin_n with_o the_o pharisy_n in_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o there_o be_v no_o miraculous_a operation_n but_o they_o appertain_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n moreover_o the_o protestant_n impugn_v that_o article_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n who_o can_v abyd_a the_o name_n catholic_n nor_o the_o name_n of_o church_n but_o rather_o term_v it_o congregation_n which_o proper_o belong_v to_o beast_n of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o the_o first_o question_n and_o in_o the_o twelve_o upon_o the_o note_n catholic_n moreover_o they_o misbelieve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o affirm_v the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o belief_n not_o account_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o matth._n 16._o luc._n 22._o john_n 14._o act._n 2._o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o faith_n thereof_o shall_v never_o fail_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o teacher_n of_o all_o truth_n shall_v perpetual_o remain_v with_o it_o to_o keep_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n unspote_v and_o without_o all_o wrinkle_n and_o this_o church_n be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o sectary_n themselves_o profess_v neither_o deny_v they_o but_o in_o this_o church_n be_v universality_n consent_n &_o antiquity_n as_o fox_n act_v pag._n 1359._o jewelrepl_n count_v hard._n part_n 4._o divis_fw-la 14._o &_o 21._o pag._n 249._o &_o 268._o cal._n lib._n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 2.3_o also_o consider_v that_o in_o no_o other_o procession_n be_v the_o lyk_fw-mi holiness_n of_o life_n and_o unity_n in_o doctrine_n which_o accompany_v one_o another_o as_o good_a and_o bad_a fruit_n of_o a_o good_a and_o a_o bad_a tree_n no_o heresy_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v can_v make_v comparison_n with_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n either_o for_o holiness_n of_o lyf_v or_o integrity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o for_o their_o doctrine_n we_o may_v easy_o consider_v to_o what_o holiness_n of_o lyfe●t_n tend_v as_o their_o own_o rabbin_n shall_v testimony_n give_v and_o first_o caluin_n instruct_v contra_fw-la laber●_n cap._n 13._o have_v any_o man_n covet_v his_o neighbour_n wife_n let_v he_o enjoy_v she_o if_o he_o can_v for_o he_o know_v assure_o he_o do_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n let_v he_o bold_o snatch_v by_o force_n or_o fraud_n his_o neighbour_n substance_n for_o he_o will_v take_v nothing_o unless_o god_n will_v and_o approve_v it_o likewise_o zuingl_n ●om_n 1_o in_o act_n disp_v tigurinaefol_n 628._o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o to_o give_v we_o heaven_n we_o need_v not_o travail_v to_o at_o tayn_v it_o and_o as_o for_o fruit_n ensue_v such_o doctrine_n luther_n say_v tom._n 1_o inc_fw-la 8_o mat._n they_o speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o be_v angel_n but_o if_o you_o regard_v their_o work_n they_o be_v rather_o devil_n i_o in_o nari_fw-la in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 15_o fol_z 161_o 162._o they_o live_v lyk_fw-mi hog_n &_o as_o dog_n they_o die_v lykwyse_o calu._n descand_v pag._n 118_o 127_o 128._o our_o preacher_n i_o say_v our_o preacher_n who_o enter_v into_o the_o pulpit_n be_v either_o of_o wickedness_n or_o other_o evil_n more_o filthy_a example_n than_o pagan_n be_v and_o such_o forsooth_o as_o be_v to_o be_v conten_v of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o be_v point_v at_o in_o division_n &_o i_o admire_v the_o patience_n of_o the_o people_n that_o woman_n &_o child_n do_v not_o load_v they_o with_o mire_n and_o dyrte_n lykwyse_o zue_a tom_fw-mi 1_o fol_z 115._o we_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v ardent_a with_o we_o whereas_o the_o work_n thereof_o have_v make_v we_o infamous_a to_o all_o church_n morover_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v stability_n and_o constancy_n in_o her_o whole_a doctrine_n in_o her_o sacrament_n and_o scripture_n but_o the_o
contrary_n be_v with_o the_o protestant_n no_o constancy_n no_o stability_n in_o their_o doctrine_n as_o witness_v zuingl_n tom._n 2._o comm_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la relig_n cap._n de_fw-mi euch_fw-ge fol._n 202._o we_o recant_v here_o what_o we_o say_v there_o with_o this_o condition_n that_o that_o which_o we_o delyver_v the_o 42_o year_n of_o our_o age_n take_v place_n of_o what_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o 40._o year_n in_o this_o same_o mind_n be_v beza_n in_o colloq_fw-la mompel_v pag._n 100l_n 268_o 388_o i_o confess_v i_o to_o have_v write_v many_o thing_n which_o i_o wish_v have_v not_o be_v write_v i_o will_v to_o god_n the_o memory_n of_o they_o all_o be_v abolish_v moreover_o they_o impugn_v this_o article_n and_o fall_v in_o misbelief_n who_o appeal_v to_o a_o invisible_a church_n remove_v from_o all_o sense_n lyk_fw-mi a_o platonical_a idea_n separate_v from_o all_o knowledge_n neither_o extant_a in_o any_o country_n neither_o read_v of_o in_o any_o history_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o evangelicall_a annunciation_n no_o sacrament_n minystre_v no_o person_n know_v and_o this_o be_v do_v because_o their_o conscience_n inform_v they_o that_o the_o true_a visible_a ancient_a and_o universal_a church_n in_o which_o christ_n name_n scripture_n and_o sacrament_n be_v preserve_v stand_v with_o we_o against_o they_o in_o avouch_v the_o same_o it_o be_v a_o desperate_a opinion_n proceed_v from_o profound_a infidelity_n as_o concern_v that_o article_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n article_n against_o the_o 10_o article_n by_o this_o article_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o communion_n betwixt_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o one_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n but_o this_o article_n be_v misbelieve_v of_o the_o protestant_n who_o deny_v all_o correspondence_n betwixt_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o man_n in_o earth_n as_o also_o they_o misblieve_v &_o impugn_v scripture_n which_o justify_v this_o controversy_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n conformable_a to_o this_o article_n moreover_o this_o article_n disallow_v the_o discord_n among_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o for_o sturn_n di_fw-mi rati●_n contradict_v ineundae_fw-la pag._n 24._o say_v that_o the_o lutheran_n in_o their_o publish_a book_n do_v condemn_v the_o church_n of_o england_n france_n flanders_n scotland_n etc._n etc._n and_o call_v their_o martyr_n martyr_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o jester_n zuingl_n caluinist_n lib._n the_o diuturm_n belli_fw-la eucha_fw-mi pag._n 25.80_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o chide_v write_v accuse_v dispute_v condemn_a excommunicate_v betwixt_o the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o caluiniste_n and_o this_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n morover_n they_o fall_v in_o misbelief_n and_o impugn_v this_o article_n who_o affirm_v it_o blasphemy_n to_o give_v title_n to_o saint_n in_o heaven_n which_o they_o themselves_o usurp_v and_o give_v to_o sinner_n on_o earth_n in_o this_o mad_a humour_n be_v caluin_n who_o not_o endure_v any_o honour_n towards_o saint_n or_o image_n yet_o can_v permit_v his_o own_o picture_n to_o be_v bear_v about_o the_o neck_n of_o they_o in_o geneva_n and_o when_o some_o thought_n it_o insolent_a arrogancy_n and_o reprehensible_a admonish_v that_o the_o people_n may_v sin_v thereby_o because_o they_o esteem_v it_o as_o a_o remedy_n against_o mischance_n answer_v they_o grieve_v at_o it_o till_o you_o burst_v and_o after_o hang_v yourselves_o bol_n in_o vita_fw-la calu._n cap._n 12._o morover_n as_o concern_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n all_o protestant_n remain_v in_o this_o misbelief_n and_o be_v repugnant_a to_o this_o article_n partly_o affirm_v only_a faith_n to_o justify_v and_o consequent_o be_v once_o in_o this_o protestant_n faith_n which_o once_o have_v can_v never_o be_v lose_v they_o can_v never_o after_o sin_n &_o what_o shall_v they_o believe_v which_o they_o already_o have_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o second_o question_n at_o length_n partly_o by_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o evil_a and_o themselves_o but_o bare_a instrument_n and_o consequent_o not_o themselves_o but_o that_o god_n have_v need_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n partly_o in_o say_v a_o man_n have_v no_o frewill_n and_o consequent_o can_v sin_n partly_o by_o say_v that_o sin_n can_v be_v forgive_v in_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o christ_n doctrine_n job_n 20_o for_o if_o the_o protestant_a will_n not_o deny_v but_o there_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o baptism_n whey_n not_o in_o penance_n to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o if_o the_o one_o be_v a_o wash_n of_o the_o spot_a the_o other_o be_v also_o a_o louse_v of_o the_o bind_v and_o the_o one_o as_o necessary_a as_o the_o other_o article_n against_o the_o 2d_o article_n moreover_o as_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a this_o article_n be_v misbelieve_v and_o impugn_a among_o themselves_o for_o luther_n say_v of_o the_o caluinist_n that_o they_o intend_v to_o a_o manifest_a apostasy_n concern_v this_o article_n tom._n 7._o witt._n defend_v verb._n caen._n fol._n 390._o the_o same_o villagaignon_fw-fr epist_n add_v geneu_fw-fr &_o in_o praef_n lib._n 1_o de_fw-mi euch_fw-ge affirm_v that_o with_o his_o ear_n he_o hear_v it_o preach_v of_o the_o caluiniste_n that_o the_o hope_n of_o lyf_v do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n but_o to_o the_o soul_n lykwyse_o almaricus_fw-la on_o of_o fox_n martyr_n as_o caesar_n lib_n dial_n dial_n 5_o affirm_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n caluin_n be_v of_o this_o same_o opinion_n in_o his_o epist_n ad_fw-la farell_n fol._n 194._o saying_n in_o that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n seem_v incredible_a to_o thou_o it_o be_v no_o thing_n admirable_a moreover_o they_o misbelieve_v this_o article_n who_o deny_v man_n soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a unto_o which_o opinion_n luther_n be_v incline_v tom._n 4_o in_o eccles_n cap._n 9●_n 5_o &_o 10._o it_o appear_v say_v he_o out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o dead_a feel_v nothing_o likewise_o calu_n in_o praef_n psi●hrinachiae_n &_o in_o praef_n gallasij_fw-la say_v that_o he_o know_v certain_a good_a man_n to_o who_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n sleep_v seem_v sound_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v one_o of_o these_o good_a man_n who_o in_o the_o ps_n 130._o say_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v anihillate_v and_o not_o in_o hell_n lib._n 3._o just_a cap._n 25._o §_o 12._o and_o the_o residue_n to_o be_v but_o shadow_n imagination_n fantasy_n idol_n dead_a and_o consequent_o no_o immortality_n whereupon_o it_o be_v conclude_v in_o a_o solemn_a disputation_n at_o geneva_n when_o they_o have_v long_o consult_v how_o to_o avoid_v purgatory_n to_o say_v let_v we_o affirm_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v extinguish_v together_o with_o the_o body_n ●●eed_n purgatory_n be_v abolish_v by_o deny_v the_o article_n of_o the_o ●●eed_n and_o so_o purgatory_n will_v be_v speedy_o abolish_v for_o this_o doctrine_n be_v so_o urgent_a that_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o can_v well_o be_v deny_v until_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n also_o be_v deny_v but_o why_o be_v purgatory_n so_o annex_v to_o this_o article_n that_o the_o protestant_n be_v drive_v to_o his_o extremity_n because_o they_o observe_v that_o god_n oft_o forgive_v the_o offence_n and_o yet_o reserve_v a_o chastisement_n for_o satisfaction_n as_o in_o adam_n in_o moses_n in_o david_n who_o offence_n be_v forgive_v yet_o adam_n remain_v subject_a to_o death_n purgatory_n this_o place_n serve_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n and_o endure_v all_o other_o misery_n moses_n never_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n david_n ch_z l_o beget_v in_o sin_n dye_v so_o likewise_o because_o god_n be_v ever_o one_o and_o lyk_fw-mi himself_z such_o as_o repent_v late_a or_o slak_o may_v be_v forgive_v at_o their_o death_n and_o yet_o for_o satisfaction_n remain_v in_o purgatory_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o ready_a way_n to_o deny_v purgatory_n by_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o mortality_n of_o the_o soul_n article_n against_o the_o 12_o article_n and_o as_o for_o that_o article_n the_o life_n everlasting_a so_o many_o be_v in_o misbelief_n and_o impugn_v this_o as_o deny_v god_n heaven_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v the_o great_a abundant_a light_n of_o truth_n that_o have_v spring_v with_o the_o reform_a who_o in_o the_o blindness_n and_o night_n of_o darkness_n wherein_o they_o be_v wrap_v do_v vant_n and_o glorify_v as_o in_o the_o clearness_n of_o the_o light_n greg._n lib._n 1._o mor_fw-fr cap._n 26._o who_o will_v be_v more_o curious_a to_o know_v how_o
deform_v the_o protestant_n profession_n be_v concern_v the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n let_v he_o read_v quirinus_n cnoglerus_fw-la de_fw-la symbolo_fw-la caluin_n &_o luther_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v a_o thousand_o point_n of_o misbelief_n and_o filthy_a absurd_a error_n and_o negation_n in_o the_o twelfue_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o right_o they_o conclude_v their_o proposition_n to_o be_v true_a to_o have_v indeed_o in_o their_o reformation_n reject_v all_o papistical_a doctrine_n god_n and_o all_o true_a faith_n and_o therefore_o just_o may_v be_v call_v deformere_n and_o no_o reformer_n qvaestio_n xiiii_o of_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n wherefore_o affirm_v the_o papist_n the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o to_o be_v visible_a see_v sometime_o though_o have_v perish_v and_o have_v remain_v altogether_o invisible_a luth_n lib._n de_fw-la abrogand_n miss_v caluin_n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 7._o melanch_n in_o loc_n come_v loc_fw-la 12._o &_o alij_fw-la answer_n good_a friend_n i_o believe_v you_o suppose_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o church_n see_v it_o be_v only_o one_o which_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n be_v visible_a and_o spree_v abroad_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o her_o citizen_n shine_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o crooked_a &_o perverse_a nation_n like_o stair_n in_o the_o firmament_n visible_a the_o church_n be_v visible_a and_o do_v remain_v glorious_a in_o every_o nation_n show_v themselves_o member_n in_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n of_o this_o visible_a church_n therefore_o one_o it_o be_v and_o not_o many_o public_a and_o not_o hide_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v visible_a the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n be_v place_v in_o the_o son_n nether_a shall_v this_o seem_v marvel_n to_o any_o if_o all_o that_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n will_v take_v heed_n to_o the_o last_o end_n unto_o which_o all_o do_v tend_v and_o to_o the_o same_o principales_fw-la &_o mediate_n if_o all_o i_o say_v will_v concur_v with_o one_o mind_n to_o wit_n in_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n for_o it_o can_v be_v that_o there_o be_v two_o church_n otherways_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o last_o end_n distinct_a and_o two_o kind_n of_o principal_a mediate_n to_o obtain_v these_o end_n therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v ever_o be_v visible_a as_o may_v appear_v of_o her_o note_n and_o by_o many_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o which_o two_o shall_v suffice_v for_o brevity_n sake_n first_o in_o the_o ps_n 18._o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v place_v his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o foune_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o have_v place_v the_o church_n in_o the_o pure_a light_n that_o it_o may_v be_v visible_a to_o all_o the_o world_n for_o as_o s._n aug_n tract_n 2._o in_o epist._n joh._n say_v he_o have_v place_v his_o church_n in_o the_o son_n not_o in_o the_o night_n but_o in_o the_o day_n again_o he_o say_v what_o more_o be_o i_o to_o say_v they_o that_o he_o be_v blind_a that_o sith_o not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o that_o he_o shut_v and_o closs_v his_o eye_n against_o the_o candle_n set_v on_o the_o candelstick_a matth._n 5._o again_o s._n aug_n upon_o the_o 18._o of_o matth._n v._n 15_o our_o saviour_n admonish_v if_o they_o brother_n sin_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o reprove_v he_o betwixt_o thou_o &_o he_o if_o he_o hear_v th●●_n thou_o have_v win_v thy_o brother_n but_o if_o he_o hear_v th●e_n not_o yet_o take_v own_o witness_n with_o thou_o or_o two_o that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o thou_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v stand_v but_o if_o he_o hear_v thou_o n●t_o ●hen_o tell_v the_o ch●rch_n &_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n i_o hope_v if_o reason_n be_v with_o man_n the_o reform_a will_n here_o consider_v diligent_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be-because_a these_o word_n special_o tell_v the_o church_n be_v to_o recure_v to_o the_o church_n as_o judge_v the_o which_o must_v be_v visible_a for_o no_o judge_n can_v be_v invisible_a if_o he_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n for_o how_o shall_v i_o find_v she_o that_o be_v invisible_a how_o shall_v i_o declare_v to_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a who_o have_v ever_o institute_v recourse_n to_o a_o invisible_a judge_n likewise_o i_o ask_v how_o long_o have_v your_o reform_a church_n be_v invisible_a what_o minyster_n of_o the_o divyne_a word_n have_v you_o have_v with_o you_o what_o sacrament_n and_o how_o be_v they_o minystre_v in_o all_o age_n past_a who_o of_o you_o have_v oppose_v against_o vpryse_v heresy_n for_o somuch_o as_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v oppugn_v in_o every_o age_n answer_v for_o her_o invisibility_n if_o you_o can_v as_o for_o the_o catholic_n and_o to_o their_o purpose_n many_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n serve_v as_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o banquet_n the_o thresk_a floor_n and_o the_o fisher_n net_n the_o sheepfold_a etc._n etc._n all_o which_o do_v prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o other_o senator_n of_o the_o world_n comper_v s._n aug._n in_o his_o epist_n 161._o ad_fw-la hon._n danat_fw-la make_v mention_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o believe_v it_o of_o faith_n and_o as_o it_o be_v with_o his_o finger_n point_v the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o to_o be_v visible_a for_o so_o much_o as_o s_n paul_n in_o all_o his_o epistle_n put_v the_o name_n of_o these_o city_n kingdom_n and_o nation_n as_o macedonia_n achaia_n jerusalem_fw-la roman_n hebrews_n corinth_n colloss_n philip_n gallat_n ephes_n likewise_o s._n john_n in_o his_o apocal._n wrytte_v to_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o asia_n etc._n etc._n which_o church_n undoubted_o be_v visible_a as_o the_o other_o church_n rehearse_v thorefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o invisible_a and_o mathematical_a unknown_a to_o the_o world_n but_o only_o to_o god_n be_v christian_a man_n so_o blind_a as_o yet_o not_o to_o see_v th●s_a church_n before_o your_o doctrine_n which_o of_o necessity_n must_v make_v a_o visible_a church_n for_o if_o the_o church_n he_o invisible_a how_o be_v you_o become_v visible_a for_o pastor_n be_v the_o representation_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n and_o not_o of_o a_o invisible_a who_o be_v so_o blind_a to_o ●ollow_v your_o imaginary_a opinion_n against_o the_o mount_n of_o god_n the_o glorious_a sonn_n &_o the_o burn_a lamp_n &_o to_o make_v the_o church_n obscure_v and_o darken_v through_o your_o idle_a opinion_n observe_v this_o for_o a_o true_a note_n we_o be_v all_o oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n to_o conjoin_v ourselves_o to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n &_o to_o persevere_v in_o she_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o obey_v her_o head_n &_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n like_a as_o s._n hier._n say_v epist_n ad_fw-la dam._n unto_o thy_o holiness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o join_v and_o concord_n with_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v without_o this_o house_n shall_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o lamb_n and_o he_o be_v profane_a and_o if_o any_o man_n be_v not_o within_o the_o ark_n of_o noe._n he_o shall_v perish_v endure_v the_o deluge_n now_o true_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o any_o to_o eat_v of_o this_o lamb_n out_o of_o the_o right_a house_n or_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n of_o no_n who_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v or_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v invisible_a therefore_o as_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v the_o visible_a sign_n of_o circumsition_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n even_o so_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n in_o visible_a sign_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n for_o if_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v ever_o certain_a external_a symbol_n visible_a for_o humane_a society_n &_o observance_n of_o duty_n even_o so_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n christ_n have_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n for_o unity_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o member_n of_o his_o church_n for_o as_o s._n aug._n lib._n 19_o cont_n faust._n cap._n 11._o say_v in_o no_o religion_n true_a or_o false_a man_n can_v be_v unite_v without_o visible_a sign_n and_o sacrament_n moreover_o the_o visible_a church_n from_o the_o time_n it_o begin_v it_o never_o fail_v neither_o may_n fail_v because_o before_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a faith_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o and_o likewise_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v in_o some_o man_n who_o make_v up_o a_o church_n
of_o god_n &_o likewise_o that_o church_n which_o be_v after_o christ_n have_v never_o fail_v or_o may_v fail_v according_a to_o that_o stait_z in_o which_o it_o be_v institute_v of_o himself_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v fortolde_v to_o be_v eternal_a as_o psal_n 47_o v._n 9_o be_v say_v as_o we_o have_v hard_a so_o we_o have_v we_o see_v in_o the_o city_n of_o our_o god_n and_o god_n have_v establish_v it_o for_o ever_o which_o psalm_n be_v speak_v altogether_o of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o perpetuity_n likewise_o her_o visibility_n be_v also_o mention_v whyl_v the_o prophet_n say_v as_o we_o have_v hard_a and_o see_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o obscur_o design_v or_o invisible_a also_o dan._n 2._o v._n 44._o say_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o those_o king_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n shall_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v and_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v to_o another_o people_n but_o it_o shall_v break_v and_o destroy_v all_o these_o kingdom_n and_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o moreover_o s._n matth._n 16._o v._n 18._o say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o for_o as_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a head_n there_o must_v be_v a_o visible_a body_n and_o see_v christ_n be_v see_v in_o earth_n &_o do_v converse_v with_o man_n shall_v not_o his_o body_n and_o member_n thereof_o also_o be_v visible_a if_o the_o foundament_n be_v visible_a it_o behow_v also_o the_o house_n to_o be_v visible_a and_o see_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v foundament_n of_o his_o church_n ephes_n 2._o who_o can_v deny_v the_o building_n not_o to_o be_v visible_a likewise_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o be_v bodily_a that_o we_o may_v be_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n the_o apostle_n call_v it_o a_o great_a sacrament_n eph._n 5._o and_o see_v by_o sacrament_n we_o be_v unite_v and_o know_v together_o which_o be_v visible_a thing_n and_o therefore_o appertain_v to_o a_o visible_a body_n which_o be_v his_o church_n also_o which_o have_v a_o visible_a head_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v ever_o appear_v visible_a whereupon_o chryse_a tom._n 5._o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr non_fw-fr rontemnend_v eccles_n what_o be_v more_o strong_a than_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o barbarous_a may_v pull_v down_o the_o wall_n but_o the_o infernal_a devil_n can_v overcome_v it_o when_o she_o be_v batter_v she_o be_v victor_n and_o when_o she_o be_v invade_v with_o deceit_n overcom_v thus_o he_o and_o s._n bernard_n serm._n 79._o neither_o by_o the_o verbosity_n of_o philosopher_n neither_o cavillation_n of_o heretycke_n neither_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o persecutor_n may_v the_o church_n at_o any_o time_n be_v separat_fw-la from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o moreover_o it_o be_v say_v eph._n 4._o v._n 11._o he_o gane_z some_o to_o be_v apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n &_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o ●●summation_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whyll_n we_o all_o mere_a together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o knowledge_n of_o the_o soon_o of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n and_o unto_o the_o measur_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o word_n the_o apostle_n rehearse_v these_o office_n apostle_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o abyd_a in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n declare_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a which_o no_o way_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o invisible_a church_n by_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o office_n that_o moreover_o it_o implicate_v a_o contradition_n the_o visible_a church_n sometime_o to_o have_v fail_v and_o the_o invisible_a to_o remain_v for_o somuch_o as_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n be_v note_v partly_o by_o scripture_n as_o the_o deludge_n 25._o gen._n 6_o 4_o reg_n 17_o matth._n 25._o the_o go_v back_o of_o the_o son_n the_o son_n &_o moan_n to_o have_v lose_v their_o light_n and_o darkness_n to_o have_v over_o shadow_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n lykwyse_o historiographer_n and_o chronology_n make_v mention_n of_o erthquake_n fire_n tempest_n pestilence_n and_o such_o like_a prodigious_a thing_n which_o be_v register_v and_o be_v extant_a in_o every_o man_n hand_n and_o yet_o what_o time_n the_o church_n fail_v and_o become_v invisible_a there_o be_v no_o scripture_n no_o chronology_n no_o witness_n ever_o to_o be_v find_v but_o only_o clamorous_a man_n voice_n to_o say_v it_o once_o it_o be_v visible_a this_o they_o grant_v but_o how_o in_o fail_v it_o be_v improbable_a for_o if_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v fail_v and_o the_o invisible_a remain_n and_o be_v not_o see_v there_o follow_v to_o wild_a absurdity_n for_o either_o she_o profess_v her_o faith_n and_o yield_v not_o to_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o gentill_n or_o hecetick_n and_o in_o so_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v visible_a as_o the_o primitue_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n in_o time_n of_o persecutor_n for_o in_o profession_n &_o suffer_v sho_fw-mi appear_v and_o be_v a_o spectacle_n to_o the_o world_n and_o contrary_n wise_a if_o she_o profess_v not_o her_o say_v but_o lurk_v and_o retain_v it_o inward_o in_o the_o hart_n and_o outward_o by_o dissimulation_n accommodate_v herself_o to_o the_o time_n in_o follow_v of_o false_a worship_n as_o the_o helchesi●nes_n do_v as_o witness_v euse_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 31._o in_o so_o do_v sho_fw-mi can_v be_v account_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n say_v matth._n 10._o ●_o 33_o who_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o man_n he_o shall_v i_o deny_v before_o my_o father_n in_o heaven_n therefore_o the_o church_n in_o vigour_n and_o subsistence_n can_v want_v a_o sign_n of_o visibility_n morover_n the_o church_n contain_v alswell_o the_o universality_n of_o faithful_a as_o of_o bishop_n absolute_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o universal_o either_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o faith_n or_o propound_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v do_v for_o good_a manner_n whether_o express_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o no_o because_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v of_o christ_n the_o head_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v ephes_n 1._o u_fw-la 22._o he_o have_v give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o therefore_o if_o sho_fw-mi may_v err_v it_o redound_v unto_o christ_n which_o according_a to_o the_o verity_n itself_o no_o manner_n of_o way_n may_v fall_v because_o god_n be_v true_a and_o because_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundament_n of_o verity_n 1._o tim._n 3_o v._n 15._o therefore_o sho_fw-mi can_v err_v likewise_o christ_n promise_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o spirit_n of_o verity_n to_o abyd_a with_o she_o for_o ever_o and_o to_o lead_v she_o in_o all_o verity_n s_o joan._n 14._o &_o 16._o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o simple_a verity_n because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v general_o of_o all_o verity_n descrybe_a the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o teach_v the_o church_n and_o sho_fw-mi to_o be_v a_o pillar_n of_o verity_n that_o in_o nothing_o sho_fw-mi shall_v err_v otherways_o if_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o teach_n thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n no_o man_n shall_v know_v where_o the_o verity_n be_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v find_v the_o liar_n for_o have_v not_o all_o the_o father_n in_o whatsoever_o question_n and_o controversy_n of_o faith_n flee_v to_o the_o church_n as_o unto_o the_o ancher_n of_o verity_n they_o will_v never_o have_v take_v this_o refuge_n if_o they_o think_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v to_o this_o effect_n s._n aug._n lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la cresc_n c._n 33._o say_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v keep_v of_o we_o see_v we_o do_v that_o thing_n which_o have_v please_v the_o universal_a church_n the_o which_o do_v commend_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o self_n scripture_n forsomuch_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v deceive_v none_o but_o whosoever_o have_v fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v by_o obscurity_n of_o any_o question_n let_v he_o consult_v with_o the_o church_n which_o without_o any_o ambiguity_n do_v demonstrate_v and_o shaw_n the_o holy_a scripture_n again_o epist_n 118._o to_o dispute_v against_o that_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v it_o be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n again_o in_o psal_n 57_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o verity_n remain_v
whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o this_o bowel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o necessity_n he_o must_v speak_v false_a i_o say_v of_o necessity_n he_o must_v speak_v false_a who_o either_o will_v not_o be_v conceive_v or_o either_o of_o the_o mother_n be_v make_v abortive_a be_v once_o conceive_v which_o church_n serm_n ad_fw-la catachum_fw-la cap._n 20._o he_o call_v a_o true_a mother_n a_o godly_a mother_n a_o chaste_a spouse_n garnish_v with_o the_o dignity_n and_o riches_n of_o her_o husband_n not_o in_o outward_a show_n by_o lie_v deceit_n but_o in_o verity_n which_o can_v err_v and_o if_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n may_v err_v consequent_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v for_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v their_o pastor_n mat._n 23._o v._n 3._o from_o whence_o then_o be_v the_o protestant_n church_n see_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a and_o have_v err_v etc._n etc._n objection_n it_o be_v write_v say_v they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o come_v with_o observation_n luc_n 17_o neither_o shall_v they_o say_v behold_v here_o or_o behold_v there_o luc._n 17_o v._n 21_o therefore_o the_o church_n which_o be_v thè_z kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v invisible_a and_o may_v not_o be_v see_v answer_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n answer_n be_v make_v say_v behold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o or_o among_o you_o for_o in_o the_o objection_n christ_n repelle_n the_o vain_a opinion_n of_o the_o pharisy_n who_o think_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o have_v his_o begin_v with_o observation_n of_o worldly_a pomp_n with_o triumph_n and_o public_a coronation_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o worldly_a prince_n make_v his_o residence_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o answer_v they_o that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v not_o reign_v that_o manner_n of_o way_n but_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o in_o his_o church_n which_o then_o consist_v in_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n which_o in_o another_o place_n he_o verifi_v say_v bliss_v be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n luc._n 6._o v._n 20._o as_o though_o he_o will_v say_v you_o be_v member_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n with_o peace_n without_o worldly_a tumult_n and_o triumph_n from_o which_o the_o scotfree_a pharisy_n be_v far_o of_o likewise_o s._n pet._n 1._o epi._n cap._n 2._o v._n 5._o say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o spiritual_a house_n to_o wit_n not_o according_a to_o the_o invisible_a substance_n as_o angel_n or_o soul_n etc._n etc._n neither_o say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o gross_a material_n but_o of_o consecrate_a and_o sanctify_a man_n to_o god_n unite_v in_o one_o body_n and_o mind_n as_o be_v the_o multitud_n of_o believer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n objection_n you_o have_v not_o come_v to_o the_o mount_n that_o may_v not_o be_v touch_v and_o to_o the_o burn_v fire_n hebr._n 12._o v._o 18._o &_o 22._o but_o you_o have_v come_v to_o the_o mount_n zion_n the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n therefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o visible_a for_o that_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v not_o visible_a answer_n the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n deny_v not_o the_o visibilitye_n of_o the_o church_n but_o discrybe_n the_o beauty_n of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n in_o call_v it_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v say_v the_o faithful_a have_v to_o approach_v by_o faith_n and_o hope_v not_o that_o there_o be_v two_o church_n see_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o but_o build_v with_o diverse_a estate_n to_o wit_n perfect_a and_o imperfyt_v unto_o which_o perfection_n the_o militant_a do_v labour_n in_o faith_n and_o hope_v while_z she_o come_v to_o that_o beauty_n end_n which_o be_v describe_v in_o heaven_n objection_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o see_v but_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v believe_v be_v invisible_a answer_n many_o thing_n be_v believe_v which_o notwithstanding_o be_v see_v as_o christ_n be_v see_v with_o man_n eye_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v believe_v the_o messiah_n and_o god_n and_o this_o he_o prove_v himself_o johan._n 20._o v._o 29._o saying_n because_o thou_o have_v see_v i_o thomas_n thou_o have_v believe_v ergo_fw-la christ_n be_v see_v and_o believe_v likewise_o in_o baptism_n we_o see_v water_n and_o the_o application_n there_o of_o with_o the_o prolation_n of_o word_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o see_v not_o be_v effect_v which_o be_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v take_v away_o justify_v grace_n be_v infuse_v a_o character_n be_v impress_v in_o the_o soul_n none_o of_o these_o be_v see_v and_o yet_o faith_n believe_v they_o for_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n see_v and_o other_o thing_n believe_v even_o so_o in_o the_o church_n we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n a_o company_n of_o man_n profess_v themselves_o christianes_n under_o the_o government_n of_o a_o head_n but_o that_o that_o company_n be_v the_o very_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n we_o believe_v so_o that_o some_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o some_o thing_n believe_v be_v therefore_o the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n to_o be_v abolish_v and_o to_o say_v i_o see_v and_o suppose_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o deny_v to_o say_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n this_o article_n contain_v many_o thing_n more_o proper_a to_o faith_n then_o reason_n because_o we_o see_v not_o the_o elect_a neither_o do_v we_o know_v they_o and_o yet_o we_o firm_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v in_o this_o company_n as_o likewise_o we_o believe_v this_o company_n and_o church_n to_o be_v rule_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v he_o not_o and_o to_o be_v without_o error_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o verity_n and_o in_o this_o church_n only_o to_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n justification_n the_o infusion_n of_o grace_n hope_v of_o eternal_a lyf_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o her_o true_a interpretation_n dispensation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o true_a preach_v of_o god_n word_n and_o out_o of_o this_o company_n and_o holy_a church_n no_o mortal_a man_n can_v attain_v to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n or_o eternal_a salvation_n all_o these_o be_v believe_v and_o be_v not_o see_v nor_o know_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n be_v visible_a objection_n adam_n and_o eva_n have_v sin_v therefore_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n which_o consist_v in_o these_o two_o person_n have_v faill_v and_o err_v ergo_fw-la answer_v adam_n and_o eva_n be_v not_o the_o church_n but_o her_o begin_n neither_o err_v they_o in_o teachinge_a of_o false_a doctrine_n but_o as_o private_a person_n do_v evil_a or_o think_v evil_a objection_n in_o the_o time_n of_o isai_n and_o other_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o appear_v to_o have_v faill_v for_o isai_n say_v 1._o cap._n v._o 3._o that_o israel_n have_v not_o know_v i_o and_o in_o the_o 6._o v._n he_o say_v that_o from_o the_o sole_n of_o the_o foot_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n there_o be_v no_o whole_a place_n likewise_o hier._n 2._o v._n 29._o you_o have_v leave_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n et_fw-fr psal_n 13._o v._n 3._o all_o have_v decline_v and_o be_v make_v altogether_o unprofitable_a there_o be_v not_o one_o who_o do_v good_a there_o be_v not_o one_o whereupon_o we_o gather_v both_o the_o church_n to_o be_v invisible_a and_o to_o have_v err_v answer_n albeit_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n have_v fail_v which_o i_o grant_v not_o notwithstanding_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v fail_v because_o the_o synagoge_n be_v not_o a_o universal_a company_n of_o god_n peopl_n but_o a_o particular_a in_o which_o be_v many_o who_o live_v holy_a and_o err_v not_o as_o melchisedech_n job_n cornelius_n centurio_n the_o queen_n of_o candy_n eunuch_n and_o all_o these_o be_v find_v both_o righteous_a and_o faithful_a morover_n the_o prophet_n speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o speech_n pass_v as_o a_o universal_a sign_n how_o beit_n in_o truth_n all_o be_v not_o such_o for_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o affirm_v that_o all_o man_n have_v fall_v from_o god_n absolute_o but_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o divyne_a providence_n of_o god_n say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n and_o to_o be_v none_o who_o do_v good_a notwithstanding_o a_o little_a after_o he_o declaire_v some_o to_o be_v good_a who_o he_o call_v the_o people_n of_o god_n poor_a jacob_n and_o israel_n and_o
consequent_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v invisible_a nor_o err_v at_o that_o tyme._n objection_n saint_n hier._n dial._n count_v lucif_n the_o whole_a world_n say_v he_o have_v sorrow_v and_o marvel_v to_o be_v a_o arian_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n have_v err_v answer_n he_o call_v the_o world_n a_o great_a part_n not_o absolute_o the_o whole_a world_n likewise_o these_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v assemble_v at_o arimin_n to_o abolishe_v that_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o which_o counsel_n they_o only_o material_o err_v not_o know_v the_o true_a signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n neither_o be_v these_o father_n heretic_n for_o forth_o with_o know_v the_o error_n they_o amend_v it_o with_o penance_n objection_n all_o the_o apostle_n in_o time_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n lose_v their_o faith_n therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n some_o time_n have_v err_v the_o antecedent_n be_v prove_v matth._n 26._o v._n 31._o all_o you_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v in_o i_o this_o night_n luc._n 24._o v._n 11._o but_o these_o word_n seem_v to_o they_o as_o feign_v neither_o believe_v they_o he_o marc._n ult._n and_o he_o reprove_v their_o incredulite_n and_o hardness_n of_o hart_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o these_o who_o have_v see_v he_o rise_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n have_v err_v answer_n the_o apostle_n at_o that_o time_n sin_v because_o they_o be_v slow_a to_o believe_v and_o be_v worthy_a of_o reprehension_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o infidel_n howbeit_o they_o commit_v a_o sin_n in_o over_o much_o fear_v quia_fw-la timor_fw-la cadit_fw-la in_o virum_fw-la iustam_fw-la neither_o at_o this_o time_n have_v they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o doctor_n of_o verity_n to_o preserve_v they_o from_o humane_a error_n and_o fear_n neither_o by_o this_o argument_n have_v the_o church_n err_v qvaestio_n xv._o the_o interdict_v of_o scripture_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n interdict_v and_o forbid_v the_o people_n the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n and_o clear_a in_o themselves_o luth._o do_v lib._n arb._n caluin_n lib._n 1._o instit_fw-la cap._n 7._o §_o 2._o beza_n conf_n fid_fw-we punct_a 4._o art_n 27._o brent_n prolog_n count_v à_fw-fr soto_n illiric_n in_o cleave_v script_n etc._n etc._n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n as_o you_o persuade_v yourselves_o for_o it_o be_v a_o book_n full_a of_o mystery_n and_o difficulty_n the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o none_o can_v attain_v without_o the_o great_a help_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o moral_a science_n so_o that_o the_o vulgar_a read_n of_o the_o same_o without_o understanding_n have_v give_v occasion_n to_o many_o to_o interpret_v they_o after_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o filthy_o to_o err_v as_o the_o evidence_n bear_v witness_n from_o whence_o be_v heresy_n schism_n and_o dissension_n be_v they_o not_o build_v on_o the_o scripture_n because_o that_o every_o man_n will_v understand_v it_o after_o his_o own_o opinion_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o facile_a of_o understanding_n for_o the_o disciple_n they_o self_n be_v whole_a three_o year_n under_o the_o instruction_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o master_n of_o verity_n who_o be_v ever_o by_o he_o and_o often_o they_o hear_v he_o preach_v of_o his_o suffering_n death_n and_o resurrection_n notwitgstand_v they_o understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n pertain_v to_o that_o neither_o in_o the_o law_n psalm_n nor_o prophet_n until_o christ_n open_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n luc._n 24._o v._n 45._o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n have_v expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o they_o as_o a_o little_a before_o he_o do_v to_o his_o disciple_n go_v to_o emaus_n but_o also_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n a_o certain_a divyne_a grace_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a when_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n be_v thus_o dull_a to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n how_o shall_v the_o vulgar_a people_n understand_v they_o moreover_o s._n peter_n 2._o epist._n cap._n 3._o five_o 15._o say_n as_o our_o belove_a brother_n paul_n according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v to_o he_o have_v writtin_n to_o you_o and_o as_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v of_o they_o in_o which_o there_o be_v some_o difficil_n to_o understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a &_o instable_n deprave_v therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o writing_n of_o s_o paul_n be_v not_o to_o every_o one_o plain_a but_o many_o thing_n difficil_n to_o understand_v moreover_o to_o what_o end_n have_v the_o learned_a labour_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o tongue_n to_o seek_v and_o search_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a of_o understanding_n why_o do_v s._n hiero._n vex_v himself_o above_o twenty_o year_n in_o study_v the_o scripture_n a_o man_n instruct_v in_o all_o tongue_n and_o endue_v with_o most_o singular_a learning_n yet_o we_o read_v of_o he_o that_o oft_o he_o doubt_v in_o expound_v the_o prophet_n and_o have_v be_v in_o ecstasy_n of_o mind_n through_o the_o profunde_n obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o labyrinth_n be_v s_n august_n the_o pillar_n of_o divinity_n whilst_o he_o explicate_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n christ_n cap._n 6._o in_o which_o he_o himself_o think_v not_o to_o have_v labour_v sufficient_o because_o of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o arise_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v above_o his_o judgement_n therefore_o s_n hier._n epist_n ad_fw-la paulin._n say_v the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a and_o have_v need_n of_o revelation_n that_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v as_o also_o that_o we_o may_v contemplate_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o reveal_v face_n of_o god_n the_o seal_a book_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n with_o seven_o seall_n be_v show_v which_o if_o thou_o shall_v give_v it_o to_o a_o man_n of_o understanding_n to_o read_v he_o will_v answer_v thou_o i_o can_v for_o it_o be_v seall_v how_o many_o at_o this_o day_n think_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o understanding_n &_o literature_n and_o yet_o hold_v the_o seal_a book_n in_o their_o hand_n neither_o may_v they_o open_v it_o except_o he_o open_v it_o who_o have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n who_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v &_o shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v thus_o he_o morover_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n and_o luke_n seem_v to_o vary_v in_o the_o genealogy_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o luke_n say_v that_o joseph_n be_v the_o son_n of_o heli_n &_o s._n matthew_n say_v that_o jacob_n beget_v joseph_n which_o disagreement_n julian_n the_o apostate_n object_v to_o christian_n likewise_o s._n chryst._n 1_o matth._n say_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o hide_a thing_n how_o that_o elizabeth_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n may_v be_v call_v the_o cousin_n of_o mary_n who_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n moreover_o s_n mark_v speak_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n say_v of_o that_o day_n &_o hour_n no_o man_n know_v it_o neither_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n neither_o the_o son_n himself_o but_o only_o the_o father_n in_o read_v this_o no_o man_n see_v the_o doubt_n likewise_o s._n hier._n receive_v some_o question_n of_o algasia_n and_o hedibia_n about_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o first_o be_v why_o do_v john_n in_o prison_n send_v to_o christ_n &_o demand_v say_v be_v thou_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v or_o shall_v we_o look_v for_o a_o other_o who_o before_o have_v point_v he_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n how_o come_v he_o now_o to_o ask_v &_o doubt_v of_o he_o hedibia_n ad_fw-la hier._n 20._o matth._n 28._o john_n 20._o 4.5_o how_o agree_v this_o that_o matthew_n say_v that_o mary_n magdalen_n fall_v down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o hold_v his_o foot_n &_o s._n john_n say_v the_o contrary_a that_o he_o forbid_v she_o to_o touch_v he_o john_n 20._o lykwyse_a s._n mark_n say_v 20._o matth._n 16._o john_n 20._o that_o the_o two_o maryes_fw-mi in_o the_o morning_n in_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n they_o come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n when_o the_o son_n be_v rise_v and_o s._n john_n say_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o come_v when_o it_o be_v dark_a lykwyse_o in_o the_o resurrection_n 16._o matth._n 28._o john_n 20._o marc._n 16._o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o apparent_a contrariety_n as_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n their_o
number_n and_o place_n moreover_o that_o christ_n breathe_v on_o his_o apostle_n say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o if_o he_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o his_o ascension_n what_o need_v he_o to_o send_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o his_o ascension_n see_v they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n already_o hidib_n quaest_a 9_o likewise_o s._n paul_n say_v rom._n 3._o we_o think_v a_o man_n to_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o contrariwyse_o s._n james_n cap._n 2._o say_v what_o avayl_v it_o though_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n if_o he_o have_v no_o work_n can_v his_o faith_n save_o he_o for_o without_o work_n faith_n be_v dead_a moreover_o it_o be_v say_v rom._n 5._o that_o faith_n be_v reckon_v to_o abraham_n for_o righteousness_n and_o contrariwyse_o s._n jac._n 2._o say_v that_o abraham_n our_o father_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n likewise_o s._n paul_n rom._n 10._o declare_v the_o rejection_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n allege_v the_o prophet_n isai_n say_v i_o be_o find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v i_o not_o and_o manifest_v to_o they_o that_o ask_v not_o for_o i_o but_o unto_o israel_n all_o the_o day_n long_o i_o have_v streach_v forth_o my_o hand_n unto_o a_o people_n that_o believe_v i_o not_o but_o speak_v against_o i_o and_o after_o this_o he_o say_v have_v god_n cast_v away_o his_o people_n god_n forbid_v if_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o they_o be_v the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o world_n have_v they_o so_o offend_v and_o stumble_v that_o they_o shall_v fall_v he_o answer_n saying_n god_n forbid_v and_o yet_o after_o this_o he_o argument_n the_o contrary_a say_v because_o of_o unbelief_n they_o be_v break_v and_o cast_v away_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v this_o place_n by_o read_v the_o plain_a text_n easy_o understand_v how_o opposite_a be_v the_o apostle_n to_o the_o reader_n judgement_n lykwyse_o about_o predestination_n rom._n 9_o where_o he_o say_v that_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n neither_o in_o the_o run_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n again_o the_o apostle_n be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o rom._n 7._o saying_n will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o moreover_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n timoth._n cap._n 2._o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n if_o god_n so_o will_v who_o can_v gainstand_v his_o will_n why_o then_o do_v so_o many_o perish_v among_o christian_n and_o other_o remain_v in_o infidility_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 9_o wish_v to_o be_v accurse_v for_o his_o brother_n the_o jew_n &_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o nothing_o can_v separate_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n roman_n 8._o what_o may_v be_v gather_v of_o these_o word_n but_o that_o he_o love_v the_o jew_n better_a than_o christ_n algasia_fw-la ad_fw-la hier._n q_o 9_o likewise_o s_n paul_n cor_fw-la 15._o say_v when_o all_o thing_n be_v subdue_v under_o he_o then_o shall_v the_o son_n also_o himself_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o this_o place_n fit_v well_o caluin_n with_o the_o arian_n to_o make_v christ_n inferior_a to_o his_o father_n lykwyse_o the_o apostle_n say_v coll._n 1_o that_o he_o do_v fulfil_v that_o lack_v of_o christ_n suffering_n in_o his_o body_n this_o place_n seem_v to_o make_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n insufficient_a if_o we_o understand_v it_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n likewise_o to_o the_o hebrews_n 6._o saying_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o those_o who_o once_o be_v illuminate_v &_o have_v gu_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v participant_a of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n &_o of_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v if_o they_o fall_v away_o understanding_n the_o scripture_n be_v of_o difficile_a understanding_n shall_v be_v renew_v again_o by_o penance_n which_o in_o cap._n 10._o for_o sin_v willing_o after_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o verity_n there_o be_v not_o leave_v now_o for_o sin_n any_o sacrifice_n but_o a_o terrible_a expectation_n of_o judgement_n and_o burn_a fire_n if_o these_o place_n be_v not_o favourable_o interpret_v by_o the_o literal_a sense_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o if_o a_o man_n sin_n after_o he_o be_v christen_v and_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o after_o he_o can_v be_v reconcile_v with_o penance_n and_o by_o this_o all_o hope_n of_o mercy_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o which_o argument_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o novatus_fw-la heresy_n moreover_o s._n hier._n ad_fw-la algas_n quest_n 7._o say_v what_o be_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n scripture_n what_o wonderful_a heresy_n have_v rise_v of_o the_o scripture_n that_o scharce_o will_v any_o man_n die_v for_o the_o righteous_a man_n peradventure_o for_o a_o good_a man_n dare_v a_o man_n die_v the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v plain_a and_o easy_a of_o understanding_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o for_o lack_v of_o knowledge_n two_o great_a heresy_n arise_v of_o this_o sentence_n for_o martion_n by_o this_o defend_v that_o there_o be_v two_o god_n one_o just_a creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o author_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n the_o other_o a_o good_a god_n the_o god_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o apostle_n who_o son_n be_v christ_n for_o the_o just_a god_n few_o or_o none_o have_v dye_v for_o the_o good_a god_n innumerable_a martyr_n have_v dye_v thus_o martion_n likewise_o arius_n be_v in_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o just_a god_n by_o this_o argument_n ps_n 71._o give_v the_o king_n thy_o judgement_n o_o god_n and_o thy_o righteousness_n to_o the_o king_n son_n and_o the_o other_o good_a god_n he_o call_v the_o father_n &_o god_n of_o heaven_n by_o reason_n by_o the_o evangelist_n luc._n 18._o why_o call_v you_o i_o good_a see_v there_o be_v none_o good_a but_o god_n the_o father_n all_o these_o be_v well_o consider_v be_v the_o scripture_n easy_a of_o understanding_n think_v with_o yourselves_o and_o judge_v equal_o and_o if_o so_o be_v why_o have_v your_o chief_a rabbin_n write_v so_o many_o prolix_a commentary_n on_o the_o scripture_n and_o chief_o on_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n which_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o clear_a in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o there_o have_v rise_v above_o two_o hundrith_n diverse_a opinion_n to_o interpret_v they_o for_o the_o word_n of_o a_o testament_n ought_v to_o be_v plain_a without_o obscurity_n ambiguity_n doubt_n or_o equivocation_n as_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o a_o testament_n require_v therefore_o judicious_a reader_n observe_v diligent_o what_o facility_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n when_o in_o one_o word_n there_o be_v above_o two_o hundrith_n explication_n they_o go_v about_o to_o give_v you_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n whyll_n they_o infer_v darkness_n and_o shut_v up_o the_o verity_n from_o you_o they_o will_v have_v you_o understand_v the_o hide_a misterye_n of_o god_n by_o read_v and_o yet_o they_o will_v be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o and_o not_o delyver_v it_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n but_o according_a to_o the_o revelation_n of_o their_o privy_a spirit_n as_o cal._n l._n ●_o inst_z c._n 7_o §_o 2._o who_o say_v the_o obscurity_n and_o hard_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o sense_n and_o understanding_n be_v no_o more_o difficile_a to_o judge_v they_o then_o to_o judge_v the_o colour_n of_o thing_n black_a and_o white_a sweat_n and_o bitter_a which_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o sense_n be_v judge_v so_o that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n give_v occasion_n to_o subvert_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o give_v place_n to_o every_o heresy_n and_o to_o make_v it_o a_o store-house_n of_o each_o dogmatic_a opinion_n as_o luth._o postilla_fw-la dom_n post_fw-la pen_a there_o be_v no_o heresy_n howsoever_o evil_a or_o gross_a it_o be_v which_o will_v not_o defend_v itself_o by_o the_o scripture_n lykwyse_a tert._n lib._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la the_o scripture_n say_v he_o be_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n not_o of_o itself_o but_o occasional_o objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o by_o interdiction_n not_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n answer_n it_o be_v true_a the_o scripture_n be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o this_o food_n be_v to_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n as_o mal._n 2._o v._n 7._o the_o lip_n of_o
the_o priest_n keep_v wisdom_n and_o they_o shall_v ask_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n and_o not_o of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o rashness_n s._n hier._n epist_n 103._o reprehend_v that_o every_o one_o will_v challenge_v scripture_n this_o the_o chat_a old_a wife_n this_o the_o dote_a age_a this_o the_o babble_a sophister_n this_o every_o one_o presume_v to_o teach_v before_o he_o learn_v and_o likewise_o tert._n de_fw-fr prasc_n say_v all_o be_v swell_v up_o &_o all_o do_v profess_v knowledge_n yea_o even_o very_o heretical_a woman_n how_o male_a pert_a and_o bold_a they_o be_v to_o teach_v and_o dispute_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o to_o avoid_v these_o absurdity_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n objection_n christ_n give_v thanks_o to_o his_o father_n that_o he_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_n and_o prudent_a and_o have_v reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n matth._n 11._o which_o do_v manifest_v the_o great_a ostentation_n of_o god_n divine_a righteousness_n mercy_n and_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o less_o commend_v to_o the_o unlearned_a of_o spiritual_a understanding_n then_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o prudent_a and_o wise_a but_o the_o papist_n do_v interdict_v the_o people_n this_o knowledge_n in_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o remit_v they_o to_o the_o doctores_fw-la of_o their_o university_n answer_n i_o admit_v the_o antecedent_n and_o deny_v the_o subsequent_a for_o by_o little_a one_o be_v not_o understand_v the_o unlearned_a people_n but_o the_o humble_a and_o meek_a that_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o with_o vain_a science_n such_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n fisher_n who_o altogether_o be_v not_o unlearned_a in_o that_o whole_a three_o year_n they_o be_v conversant_a with_o christ_n the_o master_n of_o verity_n who_o by_o his_o divine_a doctrine_n illuminate_v their_o mind_n and_o understanding_n to_o have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o such_o little_a one_o be_v not_o old-doting-foles_a prating-old-wyfes_a barber_n smith_n etc._n etc._n who_o have_v always_o false_a passage_n search_v not_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o but_o prate_v babble_n and_o read_v they_o in_o their_o shop_n esteem_v more_o of_o their_o own_o judgement_n than_o all_o the_o doctor_n and_o university_n in_o the_o world_n objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o faithful_a therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v read_v and_o be_v plain_a to_o every_o man_n mind_n and_o understanding_n answer_n i_o grant_v it_o be_v but_o not_o to_o be_v expound_v of_o all_o because_o s._n ambrose_n call_v it_o the_o priest_n book_n neither_o be_v it_o without_o a_o cause_n that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v most_o sure_o keep_v in_o the_o temple_n by_o the_o priest_n as_o relate_v s._n aug._n lib._n 16._o the_o cruit_v cap._n 13._o and_o therefore_o the_o priest_n book_n be_v not_o book_n for_o the_o vulgar_a people_n objection_n they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n joa._n 6._o v._n 45._o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o other_o doctor_n for_o the_o people_n than_o the_o scripture_n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o consequent_a for_o it_o be_v not_o there_o signify_v that_o all_o people_n shall_v understand_v all_o scripture_n without_o any_o external_a doctor_n of_o god_n by_o his_o inspiration_n as_o they_o dream_v but_o he_o say_v all_o shall_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n in_o the_o last_o time_n which_o doctrine_n be_v fulfil_v by_o christ_n and_o after_o he_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o pour_v in_o his_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n true_a faith_n so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o true_a faith_n be_v public_o denounce_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n whereby_o every_o one_o may_v be_v teach_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o not_o by_o naked_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o assumption_n make_v against_o themselves_o to_o what_o end_n be_v minister_n and_o preicher_n admit_v among_o the_o protestant_n if_o all_o man_n by_o read_v the_o bible_n may_v be_v sufficient_o teach_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n of_o god_n by_o inward_a inspiration_n and_o of_o his_o own_o read_n aswell_o as_o by_o their_o preach_n objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n but_o this_o key_n ought_v to_o be_v know_v to_o all_o ergo._n and_o the_o scripture_n answer_n origine_fw-la lib._n 4._o de_fw-la princ_fw-la cap._n 2._o say_v that_o the_o inter_v pretation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n draw_v from_o the_o self_n same_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v not_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n because_o the_o scripture_n can_v warrant_v itself_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o authority_n and_o spiritual_a interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spiritual_a key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o not_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n objection_n the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n bring_v consolation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o people_n therefore_o it_o be_v good_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o vulgar_a for_o consolation_n cause_n answer_n it_o be_v true_a but_o not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o give_v consolation_n to_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n sermon_n meditation_n &_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o the_o naked_a read_n of_o the_o bible_n otherwise_o if_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n how_o shall_v the_o poor_a miscrable_a and_o idiot_n who_o can_v not_o read_v have_v any_o consolation_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o only_o in_o external_a sound_n but_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o understanding_n objection_n christ_n command_v the_o jew_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n john_n 5._o vers_fw-la 39_o and_o the_o same_o likewise_o be_v command_v to_o christian_n to_o try_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o they_o may_v judge_v of_o his_o interpretation_n answer_n the_o word_n search_n both_o in_o latin_a and_o greek_a may_v be_v in_o the_o indicative_a and_o imperative_fw-it mood_n if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o indicative_a as_o d._n stapelton_n say_v the_o sense_n be_v you_o diligent_o inquyre_v the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o you_o do_v find_v of_o i_o and_o these_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o than_o writien_n if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o imperative_fw-it christ_n have_v not_o here_o speak_v to_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n but_o to_o the_o scrybe_n psiest_n levite_n and_o pharisy_n with_o who_o be_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n who_o have_v their_o daily_a conversation_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o for_o probability_n herod_n affirm_v while_z he_o assemble_v the_o scryb_n matt._n 2._o to_o inquyre_v of_o they_o where_o christ_n shall_v be_v bear_v objection_n the_o beronenses_n do_v search_v the_o scripture_n after_o the_o preach_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o be_v commend_v that_o they_o bestow_v themselves_o daily_o in_o search_v the_o scripture_n concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v affirm_v by_o paul_n and_o silas_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n answer_n the_o beronenses_n search_v the_o scripture_n after_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o as_o doubt_v of_o the_o word_n but_o diligent_o attend_v lest_o with_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n they_o may_v also_o be_v deceive_v for_o as_o yet_o the_o beronenses_n have_v not_o make_v profession_n of_o christ_n name_n neither_o be_v they_o bind_v to_o credit_v the_o apostle_n except_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v prove_v with_o miracle_n or_o else_o by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n but_o far_o other_o way_n the_o reform_a use_n to_o do_v who_o will_v mix_v their_o private_a interpretation_n with_o the_o scripture_n repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n &_o church_n in_o raise_v new_a opinion_n and_o renew_v old_a damn_a heresy_n objection_n lvther_n de_fw-fr ser_n arbit_n teach_v and_o constant_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n in_o themselves_o be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n and_o need_v no_o interpreter_n yea_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n and_o his_o spirit_n &_o need_v not_o to_o be_v teach_v of_o any_o other_o therefore_o as_o they_o be_v facile_a in_o understanding_n so_o shall_v they_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n without_o interdiction_n answer_n where_o difficulty_n be_v it_o be_v not_o plain_a neither_o facile_a to_o all_o man_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o difficulty_n for_o it_o be_v the_o storehouse_n of_o god_n secret_n ergo._n moreover_o the_o disciple_n hear_v christ_n dispute_v about_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n and_o because_o they_o be_v his_o disciple_n shall_v have_v better_o digest_v christ_n word_n they_o the_o people_n
who_o notwithstanding_o gross_o say_v how_o can_v he_o give_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v this_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n so_o that_o neither_o the_o jew_n nor_o his_o disciple_n who_o shall_v exceed_v other_o do_v attain_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o christ_n word_n as_o note_v chrys_n in_o c._n 6._o john_n what_o they_o be_v this_o word_n hard_a and_o a_o saying_n not_o easy_a of_o understanding_n which_o be_v full_a of_o dread_n that_o their_o imbecility_n can_v not_o bear_v it_o etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a it_o be_v no_o great_a benefit_n that_o christ_n do_v to_o his_o apostle_n in_o open_v their_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o great_a matter_n that_o he_o hide_v to_o his_o two_o disciple_n go_v to_o emaus_n unto_o who_o begin_v at_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n he_o interpret_v in_o all_o scripture_n which_o be_v write_v of_o he_o for_o this_o action_n of_o christ_n argue_v difficulty_n otherways_o why_o do_v he_o labour_v to_o much_o to_o make_v they_o understand_v they_o the_o eunuch_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o candy_n read_v the_o scripture_n confess_v that_o he_o understand_v they_o not_o and_o yet_o a_o man_n of_o good_a experience_n to_o this_o effect_n phil●p_n be_v move_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o join_v he_o to_o his_o chariot_n who_o hear_v he_o read_v i_o say_v the_o prophet_n and_o ask_v he_o if_o he_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v he_o answer_v how_o can_v i_o except_o i_o have_v a_o guy_z de_fw-la wherefore_o when_o philip_n be_v with_o he_o in_o his_o chariot_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v read_v the_o eunuch_n ask_v he_o say_v i_o pray_v thou_o of_o who_o speak_v the_o prophet_n of_o himself_o or_o some_o other_o man_n then_o philip_n open_v his_o mouth_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o preach_v unto_o he_o jesus_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o place_v philip_n to_o he_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v difficulty_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o this_o man_n can_v not_o understand_v without_o a_o guide_n for_o all_o his_o experience_n no_o more_o can_v other_o man_n do_v moreover_o when_o christ_n speak_v of_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n his_o apostle_n understand_v he_o not_o say_v after_o a_o little_a while_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o see_v i_o and_o again_o after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o for_o igoe_n to_o the_o father_n joan._n 16._o if_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o christ_n be_v obscure_a and_o dark_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o the_o same_o be_v now_o be_v write_v in_o dead_a letter_n for_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o great_a force_n than_o the_o letter_n likewise_o s._n paul_n number_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o cor._n 12._o to_o one_o say_v he_o be_v give_v the_o utterance_n of_o wisdom_n and_o to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o knowledge_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o heall_v to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o judgement_n to_o discern_v spirit_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n to_o another_o the_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n work_v one_o and_o he_o self_n same_o spirit_n distribute_v to_o every_o man_n several_o as_o he_o will_v therefore_o see_v every_o one_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o utterance_n of_o knowledge_n of_o prophesy_v &c._n &c._n and_o consequent_o also_o no_o more_o understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o these_o gift_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o man_n even_o so_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o easy_a to_o all_o man_n s._n paul_n prove_v this_o well_o by_o the_o order_n and_o disposition_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n from_o which_o he_o deduce_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v a_o order_n in_o the_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n 1._o cor._n 12._o you_o be_v say_v he_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n next_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n fourthly_a they_o that_o do_v miracle_n five_o the_o gift_n of_o heall_v etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n than_o these_o gift_n be_v superfluous_a for_o where_o every_o one_o understand_v there_o need_v no_o apostle_n prophet_n teacher_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o every_o man_n understand_v than_o every_o one_o have_v all_o these_o gift_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n who_o say_v all_o be_v not_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o s._n hier._n in_o praef_n sup_v ezech._n say_v that_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o read_v the_o book_n of_o genesis_n before_o they_o ere_o thirthy_a year_n of_o age_n but_o the_o protestant_n as_o new-hatched_a chicken_n pipe_n out_o of_o their_o mother_n belly_n prattle_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o experience_n teach_v in_o scotland_n it_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o puritan_n minister_n to_o have_v long_a grace_n but_o also_o the_o chapter_n must_v be_v read_v with_o his_o gloss_n after_o the_o spirit_n and_o jok_v genny_n and_o mady_n etc._n etc._n must_v gather_v and_o repeat_v long_a note_n old_a and_o young_a must_v do_v the_o same_o otherways_o they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v weak_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o so_o play_v the_o hobly-horse_n in_o the_o scripture_n qvaestio_n xvi_o of_o the_o adulterate_n of_o the_o bible_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n condemn_v our_o reform_a byble_n john_n wigand_n lib_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la &_o malis_fw-la germ._n brent_n kemn_v cent._n magdeburg_n answer_n the_o reason_n be_v just_a on_o the_o catholic_n part_n for_o each_o on_o of_o the_o sectary_n condenne_v on_o another_o bible_n therefore_o just_o they_o may_v be_v condemn_v of_o the_o catholic_n translation_n each_o heretic_n condemn_v one_o another_o bible_n for_o evil_a translation_n for_o luther_n condemn_v the_o zwinglian_o and_o contrariwyse_o the_o zwinglians_n the_o lutheran_n likewise_o beza_n castalion_n and_o likewise_o castalion_n beza_n etc._n etc._n lykwyse_o do_v not_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o condenne_v his_o 1._o traslation_n &_o make_v a_o new_a translation_n &_o publish_v it_o by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n as_o witness_v calu._n turc_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 7._o wherefore_o not_o unjust_o be_v they_o condemn_v of_o we_o catholic_n from_o who_o your_o grandfather_n luther_n have_v receive_v the_o true_a copy_n who_o have_v corrupt_v they_o in_o mutilate_v and_o adulterate_v the_o whole_a text_n from_o his_o original_n scripture_n it_o be_v the_o protestant_n reformation_n to_o deny_v many_o book_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o what_o reformation_n be_v it_o to_o take_v away_o from_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o bias_n judith_n the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ecclesiastes_n and_o the_o machaby_n which_o book_n be_v receive_v for_o canon_n scripture_n of_o the_o famous_a and_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o carthage_n florence_n and_o trent_n of_o which_o sacred_a book_n innocent_a the_o 1_o make_v mention_n of_o they_o for_o canon_n scripture_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la exuperant_fw-la likewise_o gelatius_n in_o his_o counsel_n of_o seventy_o bishop_n likewise_o the_o father_n who_o cyte_v these_o book_n for_o divine_a scripture_n as_o at_o length_n be_v rehearse_v a_o sixth_o senens_fw-la lib_n 8._o s._n bibliothecae_fw-la if_o this_o be_v your_o reformation_n let_v the_o world_n be_v judge_v to_o blot_v out_o s_o james_n epistle_n call_v it_o a_o straw-epistle_n which_o contrariwise_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o caluinist_n lykwyse_o to_o call_v in_o doubt_n the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n with_o the_o first_o epistle_n and_o the_o second_o of_o s._n john_n jude_n &_o the_o apocalyps_n which_o place_n be_v ever_o in_o authority_n with_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n likewise_o in_o add_v to_o the_o scripture_n they_o think_v no_o sin_n for_o when_o s._n paul_n rom._n 3._o v._n 22._o say_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v unto_o all_o and_o upon_o all_o that_o believe_v the_o reform_a traslation_n add_v this_o word_n only_o as_o it_o be_v that_o by_o only_a faith_n the_o christian_a righteousness_n fall_v to_o we_o to_o exclude_v all_o good_a work_n likewise_o be_v it_o a_o honest_a translation_n of_o the_o zwinglians_n in_o turingne_n to_o change_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n matth._n 26._o marc._n 14._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o where_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n to_o change_v it_o &_o say_v this_o signifi_v my_o body_n &_o blood_n for_o which_o cause_n of_o trumpery_n the_o heretic_n can_v suffer_v the_o roman_a catholic_a byble_n and_o therefore_o just_o may_v the_o catholic_n say_v
to_o they_o just_o with_o s._n aug._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr symb._n c._n 10._o all_o congregation_n &_o heresy_n be_v a_o concubine_n and_o a_o whore_n who_o can_v blush_v and_o be_v ashamed_a as_o experience_n teach_v do_v not_o luther_n translate_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o german_a tongue_n but_o so_o wicked_a &_o pernicious_a corrupt_a and_o erroneous_a that_o it_o minister_v sedition_n mutination_n and_o rebellion_n of_o the_o people_n against_o the_o high_a power_n by_o this_o simple_a woman_n take_v on_o they_o the_o reading_z of_o the_o scripture_n and_o their_o note_n with_o such_o fervour_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o contempt_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n to_o preach_v and_o exhort_v public_o contrary_a to_o the_o inhibition_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o ought_v to_o keep_v silence_n &_o hold_v their_o peace_n where_o man_n be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v not_o the_o sighing-puritane-sister_n of_o edin_n borough_n and_o other_o city_n in_o scotland_n after_o this_o ghospel_v conversation_n at_o four_o a_o clock_n when_o they_o be_v rypest_n of_o understanding_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n i_o hope_v it_o fall_v to_o they_o by_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n so_o long_o as_o they_o read_v that_o bible_n babble_n as_o be_v prophesy_v of_o peters-wyfe_n who_o will_v never_o mend_v but_o ever_o grow_v worse_o and_o wòrse_n for_o be_v not_o their_o rabbi_n in_o that_o same_o conformity_n with_o the_o old_a heretic_n about_o the_o scripture_n who_o be_v condemn_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o deprave_v the_o scripture_n &_o deny_v of_o sundry_a book_n as_o the_o aebionits_n who_o deny_v s._n paul_n epistle_n as_o witness_v s._n iren._n l._n 1_o cap_n 26._o &_o s._n epiph._n haeres_fw-la 3_o likewise_o be_v not_o the_o manichean_o damn_v for_o deny_v the_o gospel_n of_o s_o m●tthew_n as_o witness_v s._n aug._n lib._n 33._o contra_fw-la faust_n cap._n 3_o &_o 7._o likewise_o the_o alogian_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o deny_v of_o s_n johns_n evangelist_n and_o his_o apocalyps_n s._n aug_n haer._n 30_o likewise_o the_o marcionist_n and_o arian_n for_o deny_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n to_o be_v s._n paul_n as_o witness_v tertul._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la iten_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 29._o epiph._n haer._n 41._o s._n hier._n in_o praef_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la tit._n or_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v the_o modern_a rabbin_n with_o the_o old_a heretic_n concern_v the_o scripture_n to_o repudiat_fw-la &_o reject_v the_o book_n of_o moses_n here_o upon_o be_v luther_n doctrine_n serm._n de_fw-fr moyse_n say_v let_v not_o moses_n be_v thrust_v on_o we_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n will_v neither_o regard_n nor_o hear_v he_o again_o idem_fw-la luther_n call_v the_o old_a testament_n no_o word_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o christian_n for_o moses_n appertain_v nothing_o to_o us._n again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr decem_fw-la praec_fw-la &_o lib._n 2._o cont_n rusticos_fw-la thou_o seditious_a preacher_n affirm_v say_v he_o that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v preacher_n i_o say_v not_o to_o i_o but_o to_o the_o jew_n preach_v thy_o moses_n not_o a_o title_n or_o jot_n of_o moses_n belong_v to_o we_o yea_o not_o the_o law_n concern_v we_o but_o the_o gospel_n yea_o not_o the_o ten_o commandment_n belong_v to_o us._n likewise_o luther_n serm._n de_fw-fr phar._n &_o publ_n &_o in_o proaem_n novi_fw-la testam_fw-la not_o unfit_o do_v i_o admonish_v the_o reader_n in_o my_o prologue_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o they_o shall_v abolish_v this_o opinion_n to_o be_v four_o ghospell_n for_o i_o have_v say_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n be_v most_o acceptable_a and_o true_a likewise_o he_o say_v in_o assert_v in_o prologo_fw-la the_o bible_n buble-bable_n together_o with_o the_o scripture_n be_v nothing_o but_o fable_n likewise_o ochinus_n deny_v the_o whole_a new_a testament_n jacob_n carion_n in_o chron._n a_o 1556._o pag._n 151_o print_v at_o basil_n and_o lykwyse_o ochin_n lib._n 2._o dial_n pag_n 154._o 155._o 156._o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v no_o more_o they_o the_o s_n ●●_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o he_o subscrybe_v cal_n tax_v the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n lib_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 8_o §_o 4._o saying_n if_o they_o be_v apostle_n let_v they_o not_o babble_n what_o they_o lift_v likewise_o calu._n in_o john_n cap._n 19_o v._n 23.24_o say_v that_o the_o evangelist_n wrest_v allegation_n and_o depart_v from_o the_o right_a meaning_n of_o they_o in_o cap._n 2._o matth._n v._o 18._o &_o in_o 3._o matth._n v._o 13_o &_o in_o 5._o cap._n matth._n v._n 17._o caluin_n accuse_v they_o to_o speak_v a_o brupt_o many_o sentence_n in_o their_o write_n &_o to_o term_v thing_n improper_o and_o to_o use_v many_o improper_a word_n whereupon_o caluin_n say_v that_o he_o can_v never_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n evangelist_n be_v ever_o he_o to_o this_o effect_n be_v not_o these_o book_n call_v apochrypha_n in_fw-la summa_fw-la the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o thousand_o error_n for_o say_v not_o broughton_n in_o his_o advertisement_n to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o bible_n a_fw-mi 1604._o that_o the_o whole_a original_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v pervert_v in_o above_o 8._o hundrith_n and_o 8._o place_n and_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o the_o turkish_a koran_n likewise_o in_o hampton_n conference_n pag._n 45_o etc._n etc._n the_o inglish_n byble_n be_v evil_o translate_v altogether_o and_o they_o of_o geneva_n the_o worst_a of_o all_o they_o contain_v partial_a untruth_n and_o be_v full_a of_o seditious_a note_n to_o much_o intend_v to_o mutiny_n and_o rebellion_n allow_v dissobedience_n to_o king_n and_o full_a of_o tax_v of_o king_n objection_n long_a since_o of_o some_o father_n some_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v put_v in_o doubt_n as_o judith_n toby_n wisdom_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n jude_n apocalyps_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o with_o we_o also_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o doubt_v of_o they_o answer_n the_o sequel_n be_v nothing_o for_o albeit_o thomas_n do_v once_o doubt_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v ever_o doubt_v and_o albeit_o there_o be_v no_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o wall_v with_o the_o apostolical_a authority_n and_o tradition_n yetnotwithstanding_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v suspect_v and_o doubt_v while_o by_o little_a and_o little_a by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n thing_n be_v make_v more_o clear_a so_o that_o these_o book_n which_o before_o have_v be_v doubt_v of_o have_v now_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n abtayn_v divyne_a authority_n and_o so_o consequente_o they_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v doubt_v objection_n the_o counsel_n of_o laodice_n omit_v and_o lean_v out_o those_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n ergo_fw-la wat_fw-mi the_o counsel_n have_v not_o acknowledge_v neither_o we_o acknowledge_v for_o cannon_n scripture_n answer_n ideny_n the_o consequence_n for_o the_o father_n in_o that_o counsel_n have_v not_o reject_v these_o book_n as_o not_o holy_a neither_o canonical_a but_o they_o have_v not_o numerate_v they_o among_o those_o book_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n because_o of_o the_o convert_a jew_n who_o almost_o live_v judaize_v of_o who_o phrygia_n be_v full_a from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a bishop_n in_o that_o counsel_n will_v not_o attempt_v to_o read_v those_o book_n in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n second_o if_o no_o book_n be_v canonical_a but_o these_o which_o be_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n the_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v ieiect_v for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o canon_n obiecaion_n gregorius_n lib._n 19_o mor._n cap._n 17._o as_o concern_v these_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n we_o do_v not_o speak_v uncivil_o if_o by_o beside_o the_o canonical_a book_n which_o be_v make_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v produce_v any_o testimony_n ergo_fw-la these_o book_n be_v not_o canonical_a answer_n he_o deny_v not_o these_o book_n to_o be_v holy_a which_o be_v rehearse_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n see_v it_o can_v not_o be_v hide_v and_o unknown_a to_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n that_o 200._o year_n before_o bless_a innocent_a pope_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o maccabee_n as_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o which_o these_o book_n be_v not_o number_v neither_o
januar._n so_o that_o what_o be_v institute_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o public_a utility_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v nont_a to_o be_v change_v second_o because_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n who_o be_v natural_o incline_v to_o heresy_n and_o novelty_n whilst_o in_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o understand_v it_o they_o take_v occasion_n to_o hold_v opinion_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &_o the_o precept_n of_o manner_n lest_o they_o shall_v deride_v &_o sinistrous_o interpret_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v religious_o institute_v and_o albeit_o many_o thing_n be_v put_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o the_o psalm_n and_o other_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n notwithstanding_o the_o people_n can_v attain_v to_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o for_o even_o these_o who_o be_v expert_a in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n find_v difficulty_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n church_n it_o be_v not_o needful_a that_o the_o people_n understand_v what_o be_v song_n or_o say_v in_o the_o church_n except_o first_o they_o consult_v with_o commentary_n and_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v it_o needful_a that_o the_o vulgar_a people_n understand_v what_o be_v song_n or_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n more_o than_o the_o people_n understand_v what_o the_o heigh_o priest_n do_v in_o sancta_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la hebrew_n 9_o luke_n 2._o for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a song_n be_v not_o institute_v to_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o their_o understanding_n with_o word_n but_o it_o be_v institute_v to_o awake_v and_o sturr_v up_o their_o mind_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o sweat_n harmony_n reverence_n majesty_n and_o solemn_a action_n what_o if_o perchance_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o either_o we_o travail_n in_o a_o strange_a country_n or_o that_o a_o stranger_n come_v where_o religion_n be_v if_o god_n service_n be_v not_o in_o a_o vulgar_a language_n as_o latin_n be_v how_o shall_v he_o understand_v whether_o they_o serve_v god_n or_o mock_v he_o how_o shall_v he_o that_o be_v ignorant_a say_v a_o man_n to_o thy_o benediction_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v therefore_o public_a &_o private_a prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n albeit_o they_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o he_o that_o pray_v yet_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n &_o have_v virtue_n to_o impetrate_v and_o obtain_v blessing_n because_o god_n &_o his_o saint_n understand_v all_o tongue_n which_o be_v probable_a god_n prayer_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o that_o common_a people_n with_o the_o child_n cry_v matth._n 21._o v._n 9_o osanna_n filio_fw-la david_n which_o word_n neither_o the_o peoole_n nor_o the_o child_n understand_v and_o yet_o christ_n commend_v and_o praise_v the_o child_n neither_o reprehend_v he_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o people_n whereupon_o greg._n hom_n 20._o in_o josua_n speak_v of_o a_o strange_a tongue_n say_v if_o thou_o hear_v sometime_o to_o be_v read_v in_o thy_o ear_n that_o thou_o understand_v not_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n know_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v receive_v utility_n thereby_o in_o that_o the_o only_a hear_n be_v to_o thou_o as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a charm_n to_o expel_v the_o deadly_a poison_n &_o damage_n evil_a spirit_n who_o lie_v snare_n and_o go_v about_o beseygn_v christian_n soul_n which_o ground_n caluin_n contradict_v who_o say_v in_o his_o catechism_n to_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n it_o be_v to_o mock_v god_n and_o perverse_a hypocrisy_n contrary_n to_o this_o who_o be_v of_o sound_a judgement_n caluin_n a_o similitude_n convint_v caluin_n will_v easy_o esteem_v he_o no_o hypocryte_n and_o mocker_n who_o offer_v a_o supplication_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o the_o king_n who_o be_v expert_a in_o the_o tongue_n through_o daily_a use_n &_o yet_o unknown_a to_o the_o delyverer_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o all_o nation_n have_v a_o common_a tongue_n as_o gen._n 19_o in_o which_o god_n be_v serve_v but_o confusion_n of_o tongue_n be_v make_v three_o special_a tongue_n are_z separate_z &_o institute_v for_o the_o divine_a service_n of_o god_n whereupon_o this_o custom_n follow_v that_o in_o the_o occidental_a church_n the_o use_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v ever_o with_o they_o which_o be_v a_o natural_a tongue_n to_o they_o and_o althought_v it_o be_v not_o altogether_o common_a to_o all_o nation_n for_o diverse_a nation_n and_o tongue_n be_v include_v in_o the_o occidental_a church_n and_o yet_o for_o divine_a service_n this_o tongue_n be_v most_o frequent_o use_v so_o the_o greek_a church_n use_v the_o greek_a and_o chaldaic_a and_o yet_o the_o greek_a and_o chaldaic_a be_v another_o tongue_n different_a from_o the_o common_a tongue_n which_o the_o people_n use_v in_o their_o meetting_n but_o the_o other_o be_v use_v only_o among_o the_o learned_a and_o with_o the_o priest_n in_o divyne_a service_n for_o it_o be_v never_o a_o custom_n through_o the_o universal_a world_n that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o vulgar_a country_n tongue_n shall_v be_v admit_v in_o divyne_a service_n but_o that_o which_o be_v most_o common_a universal_o to_o all_o nation_n ut_fw-la omnis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la laudet_fw-la dominum_fw-la and_o as_o concern_v the_o read_n &_o pray_v in_o a_o vulgar_a national_a tongue_n it_o be_v no_o perfection_n to_o do_v so_o for_o then_o the_o use_n of_o the_o better_a tongue_n fail_v as_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a which_o be_v sanctify_v on_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o latin_a be_v common_a to_o all_o it_o be_v use_v much_o more_o special_o it_o be_v common_a to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o see_v god_n require_v the_o best_a of_o every_o thing_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o he_o as_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o most_o love_a father_n who_o doubt_v but_o a_o learned_a holy_a and_o common_a tongue_n be_v more_o honourable_a than_o a_o barbarous_a profane_a &_o private_a tongue_n be_v and_o moreover_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n with_o who_o special_o we_o communicate_v in_o our_o service_n &_o in_o prayer_n that_o we_o may_v say_v all_o one_o thing_n the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v count_v strange_a and_o unknown_a which_o strange_a tongue_n s._n paul_n do_v little_a regard_n i._n cor._n 14._o and_o prefer_v the_o common_a tongue_n which_o be_v delyver_v to_o the_o first_o christian_n sanctify_v of_o christ_n and_o delyver_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n part_n of_o the_o world_n not_o regard_v the_o multitude_n of_o vulgar_a tongue_n which_o be_v use_v in_o particular_a province_n for_o usual_o the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v special_o in_o the_o east_n and_o the_o latin_a in_o the_o west_n church_n for_o christ_n be_v on_o the_o cross_n from_o who_o be_v the_o pattern_n of_o all_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n who_o know_v right_o well_o that_o the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o jew_n can_v not_o understand_v he_o because_o the_o true_a hebrew_n tongue_n be_v either_o lose_v or_o much_o decay_v in_o the_o common_a speech_n and_o every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o fail_v after_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n do_v recyte_v the_o begin_n of_o the_o psal_n 21._o in_o hebreu_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o and_o do_v not_o either_o then_o or_o any_o other_o time_n interpret_v it_o in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n therefore_o out_o of_o doubt_n after_o his_o example_n we_o may_v do_v the_o like_a in_o these_o tongue_n in_o our_o service_n and_o prayer_n which_o priest_n and_o clerk_n understand_v albeit_o the_o common_a people_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o same_o for_o this_o good_a arise_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n to_o wit_n learning_n and_o devotion_n whereas_o the_o protestant_n have_v once_o have_v the_o latin_a service_n &_o change_v it_o into_o their_o particular_a vulgar_a tongue_n have_v lose_v both_o learning_n and_o devotion_n for_o amen_o alleluia_n build_v many_o church_n hospital_n bridge_n etc._n etc._n and_o augment_v the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n contrary_a wise_a so_o be_v it_o have_v pull_v down_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o banish_a devotion_n so_o that_o fall_v from_o the_o latin_a to_o the_o vulgar_a they_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o better_a to_o the_o worse_o and_o from_o unity_n into_o heresy_n and_o so_o to_o devyde_v the_o coat_n of_o christ_n into_o many_o part_n which_o thing_n the_o barbarous_a and_o profane_a soldier_n be_v afraid_a to_o do_v john_n 19_o objection_n saint_n paul_n i._n cor._n 14._o say_v let_v no_o man_n speak_v a_o strange_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o understand_v for_o say_v he_o who_o shall_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o idiot_n &_o how_o shall_v he_o say_v amen_o upon_o thy_o benediction_n because_o he_o know_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v but_o
their_o merit_n be_v not_o mercenary_a not_o base_v but_o honourable_a good_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n our_o father_n who_o son_n we_o be_v if_o we_o inclyne_v our_o hart_n to_o do_v his_o law_n for_o a_o reward_n and_o this_o be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o concomminanter_n we_o shall_v work_v good_a work_n with_o his_o grace_n unto_o life_n eternal_a who_o will_n be_v to_o remunerat_v &_o give_v that_o beatitude_n for_o a_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n qvaest_a 10._o xxxiii_o of_o confidence_n conceive_v of_o merit_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n conceive_v such_o confidence_n of_o eteruall_a life_n by_o their_o merit_n see_v it_o savour_v of_o presumption_n and_o in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o our_o redeemer_n calu._n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 12._o §_o 3.4_o answer_n i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o anough_o to_o confide_v and_o trust_v simpliciter_o but_o also_o with_o assure_a faith_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v good_a work_n to_o merit_v life_n eternal_a for_o we_o can_v obtain_v life_n eternal_a except_o we_o have_v labour_v to_o promerit_n the_o same_o with_o good_a work_n as_o be_v evident_o discuss_v already_o notwithstanding_o no_o man_n can_v firm_o determine_v and_o assurede_o persuade_v himself_o in_o his_o merit_n to_o obtain_v and_o have_v life_n eternal_a defacto_fw-la the_o reason_n be_v because_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n &_o that_o any_o man_n be_v just_o absolute_o and_o to_o have_v meritorious_a work_n and_o howbeit_o he_o may_v in_o some_o part_n repose_v confident_o to_o have_v notwithstanding_o it_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n assure_o can_v assure_v himself_o of_o perseverance_n and_o therefore_o see_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n any_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a in_o this_o life_n without_o a_o special_a revelation_n of_o god_n or_o else_o if_o we_o will_v precipitate_fw-la ourselves_o in_o the_o damnable_a gulf_n of_o the_o caluinist_n only_o faith_n we_o believe_v under_o hope_n sub_fw-la gratia_fw-la give_v diligence_n to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o good_a work_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 2._o peter_n 2._o and_o so_o we_o may_v conceive_v of_o our_o good_a work_n some_o trust_n and_o confidence_n of_o eternal_a glory_n notwithstanding_o so_o that_o chief_o the_o same_o confidence_n and_o trust_v be_v place_v dependent_o in_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o secounde_o in_o work_n and_o therefore_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o first_o part_n be_v prove_v tob._n 4._o v._n 12._o great_a confidence_n be_v with_o alms_n before_o the_o most_o high-god_n to_o all_o they_o that_o do_v the_o same_o likewise_o 1._o tim._n 3._o v._n 13._o say_v who_o have_v minister_v well_o purche_n to_o themselves_o a_o good_a place_n &_o much_o confidence_n in_o faith_n and_o see_v good_a work_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n already_o prove_v we_o may_v the_o more_o right_o trust_v and_o confide_v they_o to_o obtain_v our_o salvation_n as_o for_o example_n when_o the_o physic_n be_v very_o good_a the_o patient_n may_v the_o more_o confide_v of_o his_o health_n and_o therefore_o in_o such_o manner_n i_o may_v confide_v that_o merit_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o which_o salvation_n may_v come_v and_o so_o consequent_o we_o may_v have_v that_o confidence_n and_o trust_v of_o good_a work_n as_o a_o effect_n depend_v on_o the_o cause_n secound_o the_o posterior_n part_n be_v prove_v of_o the_o for_o say_a introduction_n because_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n divyne_a mercy_n therefore_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n virtue_n be_v give_v we_o to_o merit_n and_o to_o be_v perseverand_a so_o that_o our_o merit_n be_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o work_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o forsomuch_o as_o in_o all_o our_o petition_n &_o prayer_n we_o remite_n they_o to_o be_v grant_v for_o his_o divine_a mercy_n saike_fw-mi and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o every_o member_n conclude_v their_o prayer_n say_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o here_o be_v neither_o do_v nor_o infer_v either_o presumption_n or_o prejudice_n to_o the_o excellency_n of_o our_o redeemer_n for_o who_o favou●_n and_o grace_n all_o help_n requisite_a be_v give_v we_o to_o merit_n and_o so_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o we_o to_o be_v from_o he_o as_o the_o principal_a cause_n and_o so_o we_o do_v not_o trust_v and_o confide_v in_o our_o own_o merit_n but_o secondar_o and_o dependenterly_a for_o all_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v or_o work_v we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o divyne_a grace_n and_o whatsoever_o we_o work_v or_o merit_n it_o be_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o our_o self_n absolute_o as_o our_o adversary_n imagine_v neither_o do_v we_o presumptuous_o any_o thing_n neither_o with_o injury_n to_o christ_n as_o concern_v their_o scrupel_n for_o conclusion_n they_o be_v full_a of_o scrupelle_n to_o withstand_v the_o verity_n reveal_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o make_v not_o scrupell_v where_o scruple_n shall_v be_v observe_v it_o be_v not_o scrupell_v with_o there_o divine_v to_o affirm_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n with_o predeterminat_fw-la predestination_n without_o forseen_v cause_n the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o the_o reprobate_n damnation_n of_o christ_n despair_v on_o the_o cross_n of_o man_n freewill_n of_o the_o whole_a twelf_n article_n of_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o impossibility_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n in_o defend_v that_o all_o our_o action_n be_v mortal_a sin_n in_o make_v all_o sin_n equal_a and_o in_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v fir_v we_o from_o all_o law_n in_o take_v away_o all_o fear_n of_o conscience_n by_o only_a faith_n in_o teach_v necessity_n to_o be_v force_v in_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n in_o take_v away_o vice_n and_o virtue_n in_o man_n action_n merit_n &_o demerit_n sin_n and_o grace_n with_o other_o infinite_a number_n of_o assertion_n swallow_v up_o of_o they_o without_o any_o scrupell_v like_o another_o leviathan_n plunge_v in_o the_o wee_a see_v with_o a_o devore_v mouth_n so_o pass_v they_o without_o scrupelle_n walk_v after_o their_o own_o fantasy_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o the_o reason_n of_o moral_a knowledge_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n the_o table_n of_o this_o book_n to_o who_o proper_o the_o catholic_n name_n appertain_v quaest_n i._o pag._n 2._o of_o the_o damnable_a and_o special_a faith_n of_o the_o heretic_n quaest_n ii_o pag._n 23._o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n quaest_n iii_o pag._n 44._o of_o the_o informal_a faith_n of_o sinner_n quaest_n four_o pag._n 49._o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o miracle_n quaest_n v._o pag._n 45._o of_o the_o verity_n of_o miracle_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n quaest_n vi_o pag._n 61._o the_o pope_n be_v take_v of_o the_o reform_a for_o antichrist_n quaest_n vii_o pag._n 73._o of_o the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n quaest_n viii_o pag._n 89._o of_o the_o roman_a sea_n of_o s._n peter_n quaest_n ix_o pag._n 107._o of_o johne_n the_o eight_o pope_n a_o woman_n quaest_n x._o pag._n 112._o of_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n quaest_n xi_o pag._n 116._o of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman-church_n and_o of_o her_o note_n quaest_n xii_o pag._n 127._o of_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o the_o protestant_n quaest_n xiii_o pag._n 145._o of_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n quaest_n xiiii_o pag._n 169._o of_o the_o interdict_a of_o scripture_n quaest_n xv._o pag._n 183._o of_o the_o adulterate_n the_o bible_n quaest_n xvi_o pag._n 199._o of_o tradition_n quaest_n xvii_o pag._n 206._o of_o the_o certitude_n of_o hope_n quaest_n xviii_o pag._n 214._o of_o publict_n and_o private_a prayer_n quaest_n xix_o pag._n 218._o of_o the_o aue_fw-la maria._n quaest_n xx._n pag._n 225._o of_o the_o bead_n quaest_n xxi_o pag._n 228._o of_o pray_v in_o the_o church_n quaest_n xxii_o pag._n 231._o of_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n quaest_n xxiii_o pag._n 236._o of_o free_a will._n quęst_n xxiiii_o pag._n 251._o of_o prescience_n predestination_n and_o freewill_n quaest_n xxv_o pag._n 259._o of_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n quaest_n xxvi_o pag._n 264._o of_o real_a justice_n quaest_n xxvii_o pag._n 269._o of_o good_a work_n quaest_n xxviii_o pag._n 276._o of_o the_o incertitude_n of_o righteousness_n quęst_n xxix_o pag._n 281._o of_o the_o pureness_n of_o good_a work_n quęst_n xxx_o pag._n 289._o of_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n quęst_n xxxi_o pag._n 296._o of_o good_a work_n do_v in_o respect_n of_o a_o eternal_a reward_n quęst_n xxxii_o pag._n 304._o of_o confidence_n conceive_v of_o merit_n quęst_n xxxiii_o pag._n 306._o finis_fw-la
of_o firm_a and_o assure_a hope_n that_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o present_a remission_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o futur_fw-la eternal_a life_n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o assumption_n for_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o we_o right_o and_o catholick_o which_o may_v be_v any_o way_n false_a for_o faith_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v and_o a_o argument_n of_o no_o appearance_n because_o the_o reason_n of_o faith_n be_v place_v in_o the_o verity_n reveal_v of_o god_n which_o for_o that_o cause_n may_v neither_o deceive_v or_o be_v deceive_v yea_o also_o we_o hope_v these_o thing_n right_o which_o otherways_o may_v happen_v for_o the_o chief_a reason_n of_o hope_n consist_v in_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o acquire_v and_o seek_v of_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v hope_v according_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o promise_v of_o god_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o be_v exhort_v after_o the_o exemple_n of_o abr●ham_n that_o in_o hope_n against_o hope_n we_o shall_v labuor_v and_o believe_v to_o make_v our_o cal_n and_o election_n sure_a 1_o pet._n 2._o faith_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o hope_n and_o faith_n for_o many_o under_o pretence_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n be_v load_v with_o the_o weight_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o charge_v in_o conscience_n unthankful_a to_o their_o creator_n and_o yet_o appear_v external_o to_o work_v the_o work_n of_o the_o righteous_a and_o walk_v secure_o perswadinge_n themselves_o to_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o at_o last_o to_o obtain_v eternal_a lyf_v when_o without_o hope_n they_o be_v condemn_v because_o hope_v look_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o only_a faith_n annulle_v and_o therefore_o we_o be_v more_o command_v and_o exhort_v to_o hope_n then_o believe_v because_o hope_n have_v ever_o actual_a rychteousnes_n adjoin_v with_o he_o and_o only_o faith_n be_v lyk_fw-mi a_o irishmans_fw-mi in_o his_o trouse_z which_o be_v without_o any_o conformity_n to_o the_o habit_n of_o any_o other_o nation_n &_o so_o for_o conclusion_n only_a faith_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o be_v plain_a opposite_a anu_fw-la contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n qvestio_n four_o of_o the_o informal_a faith_n of_o sinner_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n affirm_v &_o teach_v faith_n to_o remain_v in_o sinner_n separate_v from_o love_n contrary_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n caluin_n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 2._o §_o 8.9.10_o &_o in_o antid_v con._n trid._n answer_n it_o be_v the_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o holy_a church_n that_o true_a faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n defyne_n to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o it_o faith_n may_v be_v without_o love_n aswell_o as_o with_o it_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v may_v successive_o stand_v with_o love_n and_o charity_n or_o without_o it_o so_o that_o faith_n may_v be_v in_o the_o same_o specie_fw-la and_o number_n notwithstanding_o with_o diversity_n of_o time_n formal_a or_o informal_a science_n faith_n be_v formal_a and_o informal_a calu._n scorn_v all_o divyne_a and_o humane_a science_n howsoever_o to_o the_o contrary_a caluin_n labour_v but_o to_o no_o effect_n albeyt_v he_o go_v about_o to_o scorn_v this_o distinction_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o theological_a school_n but_o if_o this_o scorner_n of_o divyne_a and_o humane_a science_n will_v approach_v to_o the_o fountain_n of_o holy_a wryt_n and_o gust_n with_o wholesome_a taste_n true_o he_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o habit_n of_o faith_n and_o number_n to_o have_v the_o place_n of_o merit_n and_o of_o demerit_n that_o the_o scorner_n may_v be_v at_o rest_n for_o first_o christ_n matth_n c._n 7._o vers_fw-la 22._o acknowledge_v faith_n in_o sinner_n for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n or_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n as_o in_o a_o particular_a judgement_n many_o shall_v say_v to_o he_o miracle_n faith_n may_v be_v in_o great_a sinner_n to_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n lord_z we_o have_v prophesy_v in_o thy_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n we_o have_v cast_v out_o devil_n and_o have_v wrought_v many_o miracle_n to_o who_o he_o shall_v answer_v say_v i_o never_o know_v you_o for_o this_o nunquam_fw-la give_v to_o understand_v that_o even_o then_o when_o they_o wrought_v miracle_n in_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n in_o my_o name_n even_o than_o i_o know_v you_o not_o because_o you_o live_v a_o wicked_a and_o deform_a life_n with_o your_o faith_n faith_n sin_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v so_o defile_v in_o sin_n like_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o most_o expert_a physician_n who_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o art_n and_o science_n which_o he_o profess_v and_o understande_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o fragility_n of_o nature_n by_o intemperancy_n and_o bad_a live_n similytude_n a_o similytude_n do_v violate_v the_o science_n and_o medecyne_n albeit_o he_o do_v not_o loose_a and_o quit_v the_o science_n of_o medicine_n even_o so_o a_o christian_a man_n a_o prophet_n religious_a faithful_a or_o else_o whatsoever_o moral_a man_n instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n sin_v in_o the_o precept_n of_o faith_n work_n faith_n profit_v nothing_o without_o work_n do_v not_o loose_a or_o be_v destitute_a of_o his_o faith_n nether_a faithfulness_n or_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o only_a want_n and_o defect_n of_o charity_n &_o good_a work_n garment_n the_o naughty_a banquetter_n have_v faith_n with_o out_o his_o garment_n second_o he_o who_o enter_v to_o the_o banquet_n of_o the_o king_n not_o have_v his_o weddinge_a garment_n matth._n 25.15_o be_v cast_v into_o utter_a darckenes_n not_o because_o of_o his_o faith_n or_o of_o his_o baptism_n by_o which_o he_o enter_v and_o abide_v in_o the_o church_n but_o because_o of_o only_a the_o want_n of_o his_o wedding_n garment_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o want_n of_o charity_n so_o expounde_v this_o place_n all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n as_o s._n greg._n in_o evang_v hom_n 78._o three_o to_o conclude_v all_o doubt_n the_o apostle_n say_v if_o i_o shall_v have_v all_o faith_n so_o that_o i_o can_v remove_v mountain_n and_o want_v charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o discover_v what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v all_o faith_n without_o charity_n calu._n gloss_n discover_v to_o wit_n not_o to_o be_v in_o grace_n neither_o availle_n the_o gloss_n of_o rabbi-caluin_a in_o this_o place_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o catholyck_a faith_n but_o of_o the_o faith_n of_o miracle_n or_o the_o virtue_n of_o confidence_n to_o worck_a miracle_n but_o this_o evation_n be_v naught_o for_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o he_o have_v all_o faith_n absolute_o he_o conclude_v all_o both_o intensive_a and_o extensive_a perfect_a and_o imperfect_a for_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n 1._o cor_fw-la 1_o he_o conclude_v that_o there_o do_v remain_v faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n these_o three_o but_o the_o chief_a be_v charity_n only_o so_o out_o of_o doubt_n he_o speak_v of_o that_o faith_n which_o before_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o make_v mention_n of_o faith_n faith_n be_v compare_v with_o charity_n and_o charity_n to_o faith_n as_o he_o do_v speak_v of_o that_o same_o charity_n before_o therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v compare_v the_o catholic_a faith_n with_o charity_n four_o s._n jacob_n c._n 2._o v._n 14._o say_v brother_n what_o help_v it_o if_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n but_o have_v no_o work_n can_v his_o faith_n save_o he_o be_v any_o christian_n so_o absurd_a of_o judgement_n not_o faith_n may_v be_v without_o work_n although_o it_o profit_v not_o that_o think_v faith_n to_o justify_v a_o man_n without_o work_n to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o verity_n the_o whole_a father_n affirm_v and_o have_v teach_v faith_n can_v justify_v any_o man_n without_o work_n as_o iren._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 25._o expound_v the_o same_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v neither_o knowledge_n nor_o wisdom_n towards_o god_n neither_o the_o comprehension_n of_o divyne_a mystery_n neither_o faith_n neither_o pprophecy_n help_v without_o charity_n but_o be_v void_a and_o of_o no_o merit_n before_o god_n and_o likewise_o s._n aug._n lib._n 15._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la cap._n 18._o say_v without_o charity_n faith_n may_v be_v but_o not_o to_o profit_v what_o need_v we_o yet_o witness_n sey_v reason_n teach_v that_o by_o true_a faith_n the_o faithful_a be_v distinguish_v and_o discern_v from_o infidel_n damn_v heretyck_n albeit_o defacto_fw-la they_o be_v separate_v out_o of_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o name_n and_o show_v they_o be_v within_o &_o yet_o damn_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o if_o sinner_n fall_n from_o